ESOTERIC CHRISTIANITY OR THE LESSER MYSTERIES Some Leading Works BY ANNIE BESANT THOUGHT POWER ANCIENT IDEALS THE ANCIENT WISDOM THE PATH OF DISCIPLESHIP IN THE OUTER COURT BUILDING OF KOSMOS FOUR GREAT RELIGIONS THE SEVEN MANUALS AN AUTOBIOGRAPHY For Full List See End of Volume Esoteric Christianity OR The Lesser Mysteries BY ANNIE BESANT \,\ B R A 9‘?“ OFTHE ‘_ UNIVERSITY or Q 91/ ‘ (3.3:: F o 5:31; NEW YORK JOHN LANE: THE BODLEY HEAD 1902 In proceeding to the contemplation of the mys- teries of knowledge, we shall adhere to the celeb- rated and venerable rule bf tradition, commencing from the origin of the universe, setting forth those points of physical contemplation which are necess- ary to be premised, and removing whatever can be an obstacle on the way; so that the ear may be prepared for the reception of the tradition of the Gnosis, the ground being cleared of weeds and fitted for the planting of the vineyard; for there is a conflict before the conflict, and mysteries before the mysteries—S. Clement of Alexandria Let the specimen suffice to those who have ears. For it is not required to unfold the mystery, but only to indicate what is sufficient—Ibid. He that hath ears to hear, let him hear—S. Matthew COPYRIGHT 190! By JOHN LANE A 11 Right: Reserved iv CONTENTS PAGE FOREWORD . . . . . . . . . vii CHAPTER I THE HIDDEN SIDE OF RELIGIONS . . . 1 CHAPTER II THE HIDDEN SIDE OF CHRISTIANITY . . 36 CHAPTER III THE HIDDEN SIDE OF CHRISTIANITY . . 68 (concluded) CHAPTER IV THE HISTORICAL CHRIST . . . . . 119 CHAPTER V THE MYTHIC CHRIST . . . . . 144 CHAPTER VI THE MYSTIC CHRIST . . . . . 169 CHAPTER VII THE ATONEMENT . . . . . . 219 Contents CHAPTER VIII RESURRECTION AND ASCENSION CHAPTER IX THE TRINITY CHAPTER X PRAYER CHAPTER XI THE FORGIVENEBS OF Sms CHAPTER XII SACRAMENTs CHAPTER XIII SACRAMENTS (continued) CHAPTER XIV REVELATION AETERWORD . . PAGE 230 251 274 299 343 366 383 FOREWORD The object of this book is to suggest cer- tain lines of thought as to the deep truths underlying Christianity, truths generally overlooked, and only too often denied. The generous Wish to share With all What is precious, to spread broadcast priceless truths, to shut out none from the illumina- tion of true knowledge, has resulted in a zeal Without discretion that has vulgarised Christianity, and has presented its teachings in a form that often repels the heart and alienates the intellect. The command to “preach the Gospel to every creature” ‘— though admittedly of doubtful authenticity —has been interpreted as forbidding the teaching of the Gnosis to a few, and has apparently erased the less popular saying ‘8. Mark xvi. 15. Vii Foreword of the same Great Teacher: “Give not that which is holy unto the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine.” ’ This spurious sentimentality—which re- fuses to recognise the obvious inequalities of intelligence and morality, and thereby re- duces the teaching of the highly developed to the level attainable by the least evolved, sacrificing the higher to the lower in a way that injures both—had no place in the virile common sense of the early Christians. S. Clement of Alexandria says quite bluntly, after alluding to the Mysteries: “Even now I fear, as it is said, ‘ to cast the pearls before swine, lest they tread them underfoot, and turn and rend us.’ For it is difficult to ex- hibit the really pure and transparent words respecting the true Light to swinish and un- trained hearers.” ’ If true knowledge, the Gnosis, is again to form a part of Christian teachings, it can only be under the old restrictions, and the idea of levelling down to the capacities of lS. Matt. vii. 6. ’Clarke’s Ante-Nicene Christian Library, Vol. IV. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. 1., ch. xii. viii Foreword the least developed must be definitely sur- rendered. Only by teaching above the grasp of the little evolved can the way be opened up for a restoration of arcane knowl- edge, and the study of the Lesser Mysteries must precede that of the Greater. The Greater will never be published through the printing-press; they can only be given by Teacher to pupil, “from mouth to ear.” But the Lesser Mysteries, the partial unveil- ing of deep truths, can even now be re- stored, and such a volume as the present is intended to outline these, and to show the nature of the teachings which have to be mastered. Where only hints are given, quiet meditation on the truths hinted at will cause their outlines to become visible, and the clearer light obtained by continued meditation will gradually show them more fully. For meditation quiets the lower mind, ever engaged in thinking about ex- ternal objects, and when the lower mind is tranquil then only can it be illuminated by the Spirit. Knowledge of spiritual truths must be thus obtained, from within and not from without, from the divine Spirit whose ix Foreword temple we are1 and not from an external Teacher. These things are “spiritually dis- cerned” by that divine indwelling Spirit, that “mind of Christ,” whereof speaks the great Apostle,2 and that inner light is shed upon the lower mind. This is the way of the Divine Wisdom, the true THEOSOPHY. It is not, as some think, a diluted version of Hinduism, or Buddhism, or Taoism, or of any special religion. It is Esoteric Christianity as truly as it is Eso- teric Buddhism, and belongs equally to all religions, exclusively to none. This is the source of the suggestions made in this little volume, for the helping of those who seek the Light—that “true Light which lighteth every man that cometh into the world,”’ though most have not yet opened their eyes to it. It does not bring the Light. It only says: “Behold the Light! ” For thus have we heard. It appeals only to the few who hunger for more than the exoteric teach- ings give them. For those who are fully satisfied with the exoteric teachings, it is 11 Cor. iii. 16. 9Ibz'd., ii. 14, 16. 8S. John, i. 9. X Foreword not intended; for Why should bread be forced on those Who are not hungry? For those Who hunger, may it prove bread, and not a stone. ._.....'- .. .4" I' I ~’ ;’.:rir'.’l[\t i U‘:\€tVC""“ ‘ (2-? Ix “\JQALIFOR‘N‘ ESOTERIC CHRISTIANITY CHAPTER I. THE HIDDEN SIDE OF RELIGIONS. MANY, perhaps most, who see the title of this book will at once traverse it, and will deny that there is anything valuable which can be rightly described as “ Esoteric Chris- tianity.” There is a widespread, and withal a popular, idea that there is no such thing as an occult teaching in connection with Christianity, and that “The Mysteries,” whether Lesser or Greater, were a purely Pagan institution. The very name of “The Mysteries of Jesus,” so familiar in the ears of the Christians of the first centuries, would come with a shock of surprise on those of their modern successors, and, if spoken as denoting a special and definite institution in the Early Church, would cause a smile of 1 Esoteric Christianity incredulity. It has actually been made a matter of boast that Christianity has no secrets, that whatever it has to say it says to all, and whatever it has to teach it teaches to all. Its truths are supposed to be so simple, that “a way-faring man, though a fool, may not err therein,” and the “simple Gospel” has become a stock phrase. It is necessary, therefore, to prove clearly that in the Early Church, at least, Chris- tianity was no whit behind other great re- ligions in possessing a hidden side, and that it guarded, as a priceless treasure, the secrets revealed only to a select few in its Mysteries. But ere doing this it will be well to consider the whole question of this hidden side of religions, and to see why such a side must exist if a religion is to be strong and stable; for thus its existence in Chris- tianity will appear as a foregone conclusion, and the references to it in the writings of the Christian Fathers will appear simple and natural instead of surprising and unin- telligible. As a historical fact, the exist- ence of this esotericism is demonstrable; but 2 The Hidden Side of Religions it may also be shown that intellectually it is .1 a necessity. The first question we have to answer is: What is the object of religions? They are given to the world by men Wiser than the masses of the people on whom they are be- stowed, and are intended to quicken human evolution. In order to do this effectively they must reach individuals and influence them. Now all men are not at the same level of evolution, but evolution might be figured as a rising gradient, with men sta- tioned on it at every point. The most high- ly evolved are far above the least evolved, both in intelligence and character; the ca- pacity alike to understand and to act varies at every stage. It is, therefore, useless to give to all the same religious teaching; that which would help the intellectual man would be entirely unintelligible to the stupid, while that which would throw the saint into ecstasy would leave the criminal untouched. If, on the other hand, the teaching be suit- able to help the unintelligent, it is intoler- ably crude and jejune to the philosopher, while that which redeems the criminal is 3 Esoteric Christianity utterly useless to the saint. Yet all the types need religion, so that each may reach upward to a life higher than that which he is leading, and no type or grade should be sacrificed to any other. Religion must be as graduated as evolution, else it fails in its object. Next comes the question: In what way do religions seek to quicken human evolution? Religions seek to evolve the moral and intel- lectual natures, and to aid the spiritual na- ture to unfold itself. Regarding man as a complex being, they seek to meet him at every point of his constitution, and therefore to bring messages suitable for each, teach- ings adequate to the most diverse human needs. Teachings must therefore be adapted to each mind and heart to which they are addressed. If a religion does not reach and master the intelligence, if it does not purify and inspire the emotions, it has failed in its object, so far as the person addressed is con- cerned. Not only does it thus direct itself to the intelligence and the emotions, but it seeks, as said, to stimulate the unfoldment of the 4 The Hidden Side of Religions spiritual nature. It answers to that inner impulse which exists in humanity, and which is ever pushing the race onwards. For deeply within the heart of all—often overlaid by transitory conditions, often sub- merged under pressing interests and anxie- ties—there exists a continual seeking after God. “As the hart panteth after the water- brooks, so panteth”l humanity after God. The search is sometimes checked for a space, and the yearning seems to disappear. Phases recur in civilisation and in thought, wherein this cry of the human Spirit for the divine—seeking its source as water seeks its level, to borrow a simile from Giordano Bruno—this yearning of the human Spirit for that which is akin to it in the universe, of the part for the whole, seems to be stilled, to have vanished; none the less does that yearning reappear, and once more the same cry rings out from the Spirit. Trampled on for a time, apparently destroyed, though the tendency may be, it rises again and again with inextinguishable persistence, it repeats itself again and again, no matter how often ‘ Psalms, xlii. 1. 5 Esoteric Christianity it is silenced; and it thus proves itself to be an inherent tendency in human nature, an ineradicable constituent thereof. Those who declare triumphantly, “Lo! it is dead!” find it facing them again with un— diminished vitality. Those who build with- out allowing for it find their well-construc— ted edifices riven as by an earthquake. Those who hold it to be outgrown find the wildest superstitions succeed its denial. So much is it an integral part of humanity, that man will have some answer to his ques- tionings; rather an answer that is false, than none. If he cannot find religious truth, he will take religious error rather than no religion, and will accept the crudest and most incongruous ideals rather than ad- mit that the ideal is non-existent. Religion, then, meets this craving, and taking hold of the constituent in human na- ture that gives rise to it, trains it, strength- ens it, purifies it, and guides it towards its proper ending—the union of the human Spirit with the divine, so “that God may be all in all.” ’ 1 1 Cor. xv. 28. 6 The Hidden Side of Religions The next question which meets us in our enquiry is: What is the source of religions? To this question two answers have been given in modern times—that of the Com- parative Mythologists and that of the Com- parative ,Religionists. Both base their an- swers on a common basis of admitted facts. Research has indisputably proved that the religions of the world are markedly similar in their main teachings, in their possession of Founders who display super- human powers and extraordinary moral ele- vation, in their ethical precepts, in their use of means to come into touch with invisible worlds, anddn the symbols, by which they express their leading. beliefs. This similar- ity, amounting in many cases to identity, proves—according to both the above schools ——a common origin. But on the nature of this common origin the two schools are at issue. The Compar- ative Mythologists contend that the common origin is the common ignorance, and that the loftiest religious doctrines are simply re- fined expressions of the crude and barbarous guesses of savages, of primitive men, re- 7 Esoteric Christianity garding themselves and their surroundings. Animism, fetishism, nature-worship, sun- worship—these are the constituents of the primeval mud out of which has grown the splendid lily of religion. A Krishna, a Buddha, a Lao-tze, a Jesus, are the highly civilised but lineal descendants of the whirl- ing medicine-man of the savage. God is a composite photograph of the innumerable Gods who are the personifications of the forces of nature. And so forth. It is all summed v up in the phrase: Religions are branches from a common trunk—human ignorance. The Comparative Religionists consider, on the other hand, that all religions originate from the teachings of Divine Men, who give out to the different nations of the world, from time to time, such parts of the funda- mental verities of religion as the people are capable of receiving, teaching ever the same morality, inculcating the use of similar means, employing the same significant sym- bols. The savage religions—animism and the rest—are degenerations, the results of decadence, distorted and dwarfed descen- dants of true religious beliefs. Sun-wor- 8 The Hidden Side of Religions ship and pure forms of nature-worship were, in their day, noble religions, highly alle- gorical but full of profound truth and knowledge. The great Teachers—it is alleged by Hindus, Buddhists, and by some Comparative Religionists, such as Theoso- phists—form an enduring Brotherhood of men who have risen beyond humanity, who appear at certain periods to enlighten the world, and who are the spiritual guardians of the human race. This view may be summed up in the phrase: “Religions are branches from a common trunk—Divine Wisdom.” This Divine Wisdom is spoken of as the Wisdom, the Gnosis, the Theosophia, and some, in different ages of the world, have so desired to emphasise their belief in this unity of religions, that they have preferred the eclectic name of Theosophist to any narrower designation. The relative value of the contentions of these two opposed schools must be judged by the cogency of the evidence put forth by each. The appearance of a degenerate form of a noble idea may closely resemble that of 9 Esoteric Christianity a refined product of a coarse idea, and the only method of deciding between degene- ration and evolution would be the examina- tion, if possible, of intermediate and remote ancestors. The evidence brought forward by believers in the Wisdom is of this kind. They allege: that the Founders of religions, judged by the records of their teachings, were far above the level of average hu- manity; that the Scriptures of religions contain moral precepts, sublime ideals, poeti- cal aspirations, profound philosophical state- ments, which are not even approached in beauty and elevation by later writings in the same religions—that is, that the old is higher than the new, instead of the new being higher than the old; that no case can be shown of the refining and improving process alleged to be the source of current religions, whereas many cases of degeneracy from pure teachings can be adduced; that even among savages, if their religions be carefully studied, many traces of lofty ideas can be found, ideas which are obviously above the productive capacity of the savages themselves. 10 The Hidden Side of Religions This last idea has been worked out by Mr. Andrew Lang, who—judging by his book on The Making of Religion—should be classed as a Comparative Religionist rath- er than a Comparative Mythologist. He points to the existence of a common tradi- tion, which, he alleges, cannot have been evolved by the savages for themselves, being men whose ordinary beliefs are of the crudest kind and whose minds are little developed. He shows, under crude beliefs and degraded views, lofty traditions of a sublime character touching the nature of the Divine Being and His relations with men. The deities who are worshipped are, for the most part, the veriest devils, but behind, beyond all these, there is a dim but glorious over-arching Presence, seldom or never named, but whispered of as source of all, as power and love and goodness, too ten- der to awaken terror, too good to require supplication. Such ideas manifestly cannot have been conceived by the savages among whom they are found, and they remain as eloquent witnesses of the revelations made by some great Teacher—dim tradition of 11 Esoteric Christianity whom is generally also discoverable—who was a Son of the Wisdom, and imparted some of its teachings in a long bye-gone age. The reason, and, indeed, the justification, of the view taken by the Comparative Mythologists is patent. They found in every direction low forms of religious belief, existing among savage tribes. These were seen to accompany general lack of civilisa- tion. Regarding civilised men as evolving from uncivilised, what more natural than to regard civilised religion as evolving from uncivilised? It is the first obvious idea. Only later and deeper study can show that the savages of to—day are not our ancestral types, but are the degenerated offsprings of great civilised stocks of the past, and that man in his infancy was not left to grow up untrained, but was nursed and educated by his elders, from whom he received his first guidance alike in religion and civilisation. This view is being substantiated by such facts as those dwelt on by Lang, and will presently raise the question, “Who were these elders, of whom traditions are every- where found ? ” 12 The Hidden Side of Religions Still pursuing our enquiry, we come next to the question: To what people were relig- ions given? And here we come at once to the difficulty with which every Founder of a religion must deal, that already spoken of as bearing on the primary object of religion itself, the quickening of human evolution, with its corollary that all grades of evolving humanity must be considered by Him. Men are at every stage of evolution, from the most barbarous to the most developed; men are found of lofty intelligence, but also of the most unevolved mentality; in one place there is a highly developed and complex civilisation, in another a crude and simple polity. Even Within any given civilisation we find the most varied types—the most ig- norant and the most educated, the most thoughtful and the most careless, the most spiritual and the most brutal; yet each one of these types must be reached, and each must be helped in the place where he is. If evolution be true, this difficulty is inevitable, and must be faced and overcome by the divine Teacher, else will His work be a fail- ure. If man is evolving as all around him 13 Esoteric Christianity. is evolving, these differences of develop- ment, these varied grades of intelligence, must be a characteristic of humanity every- where, and must be provided for in each of the religions of the world. We are thus brought face to face with the position that we cannot have one and the same religious teaching even for a single nation, still less for a single civilisation, or for the Whole world. If there be but one teaching, a large number of those to whom it is addressed will entirely escape its influ- ence. If it be made suitable for those whose intelligence is limited, Whose morality is ele- mentary, whose perceptions are obtuse, so that it may help and train them, and thus enable them to evolve, it will be a religion utterly unsuitable for those men, living in the same nation, forming part of the same civilisation, who have keen and delicate moral perceptions, bright and subtle intelli- gence, and evolving spirituality. But if, on the other hand, this latter class is to be helped, if intelligence is to be given a phi- losophy that it can regard as admirable, if delicate moral perceptions are to be still 14 The Hidden Side of Religions further refined, if the dawning spiritual nature is to be enabled to develope into the perfect day, then the religion will be so spiritual, so intellectual, and so moral, that when it is preached to the former class it will not touch their minds or their hearts, it will be to them a string of meaningless phrases, incapable of arousing their latent intelligence, or of giving them any motive for conduct which will help them to grow into a purer morality. .Looking, then, at these facts concerning religion, considering its object, its means, its origin, the nature and varying needs of the people to whom it is addressed, recog- nising the evolution of spiritual, intel- lectual, and moral faculties in man, and the need of each man for such training as is suitable foi- the stage of evolution at which he has arrived, we are led to the absolute necessity of a varied and graduated religious teaching, such as will meet these different needs and help each man in his own place. There is yet another reason why esoteric teaching is desirable with respect to a cer- 15 Esoteric Christianity tain class of truths. It is eminently the fact in regard to this class that “knowledge is power.” The public promulgation of a philosophy profoundly intellectual, sufficient to train an already highly developed intel- lect, and to draw the allegiance of a lofty mind, cannot injure any. It can be preached without hesitation, for it does not attract the ignorant, who turn away from it as dry, stifi, and uninteresting. But there are teachings which deal with the con- stitution of nature, explain recondite laws, and throw light on hidden processes, the knowledge of which gives control over nat- ural energies, and enables its possessor to direct these energies to certain ends, as a chemist deals with the production of chemi- cal compounds. Such knowledge may be very useful to highly developed men, and may much increase their power of serving the race. But if this knowledge were pub- lished to the world, it might and would be misused, just as the knowledge of subtle poisons was misused in the Middle Ages by the Borgias and by others. It would pass into the hands of people of strong intellect, 16 The Hidden Side of Religions but of unregulated desires, men moved by separative instincts, seeking the gain of their separate selves and careless of the com- ' mon good. They would be attracted by the idea of gaining powers which would raise them above the general level, and place or- dinary humanity at their mercy, and would rush to acquire the knowledge which exalts its possessors to a superhuman rank. They would, by its possession, become yet more selfish and confirmed in their separateness, their pride would be nourished and their sense of aloofness intensified, and thus they would inevitably be driven along the road which leads to diabolism, the Left Hand Path whose goal is isolation and not union. And they would not only themselves suffer in their inner nature, but they would also become a menace to Society, already suffer- ing sufficiently at the hands of men whose intellect is more evolved than their con- science. Hence arises the necessity of with- holding certain teachings from those who, morally, are as yet unfitted to receive them; and this necessity presses on every Teacher who is able to impart such know— 17 Esoteric Christianity ledge. He desires to give it to those who will use the powers it confers for the gen- eral good, for quickening human evolu- tion; but he equally desires to be no party to giving it to those who would use it for their own aggrandisement at the cost of others. Nor is this a matter of theory only, ac- cording to the Occult Records, which give the details of the events alluded to in Gene- sis vi. et seq. This knowledge was, in those ancient times and on the continent of Atlan- tis, given without any rigid conditions as to the moral elevation, purity, and unselfish- ness of the candidates. Those who were intellectually qualified were taught, just as men are taught ordinary science in modern days. The publicity now so imperiously demanded was then given, with the result that men became giants in knowledge but also giants in evil, till the earth groaned under her oppressors and the cry of a tram- pled humanity rang through the worlds. Then came the destruction of Atlantis, the whelming of that vast continent beneath the waters of the ocean, some particulars of 18 The Hidden Side of Religions which are given in the Hebrew Scriptures in the story of the Noachian deluge, and in the Hindu Scriptures of the further East in the story of Vaivasvata Manu. Since that experience of the danger of al- lowing unpurified hands to grasp the know- ledge which is power, the great Teachers have imposed rigid conditions as regards purity, unselfishness, and self-control on all candidates for such instruction. They dis- tinctly refuse to impart knowledge of this kind to any who will not consent to a rigid discipline, intended to eliminate separateness of feeling and interest. They measure the moral strength of the candidate even more than his intellectual development, for the teaching itself will develope the intellect while it puts a strain on the moral nature. Far better that the Great Ones should be assailed by the ignorant for Their supposed selfishness in withholding knowledge, than that They should precipitate the world into another Atlantean catastrophe. So much of theory we lay down as bearing on the necessity of a hidden side in all relig- ions. When from theory we turn to facts, 19 Esoteric Christianity we naturally ask: Has this hidden side existed in the past, forming a part of the religions of the world? The answer must be an immediate and unhesitating afiir- mative; every great religion has claimed to possess a hidden teaching, and has declared that it is the respository of theoretical mys- tic, and further of practical mystic, or oc- cult, knowledge. The mystic explanation of popular teaching was public, and ex- pounded the latter as an allegory, giving to crude and irrational statements and stories a meaning which the intellect could accept. Behind this theoretical mysticism, as it was behind the popular, there existed further the practical mysticism, a hidden spiritual teach- ing, which was only imparted under definite conditions, conditions known and published, that must be fulfilled by every candidate. S. Clement of Alexandria mentions this division of the Mysteries. After purifica- tion, he says, “are the Minor Mysteries, which have some foundation of instruction and of preliminary preparation for What is to come after; and the Great Mysteries, in which nothing remains to be learned of the 20 The Hidden Side of Religions universe, but only to contemplate and com- prehend nature and things.” ‘ This position cannot be controverted as regards the ancient religions. The Myste- ries of Egypt were the glory of that ancient land, and the noblest sons of Greece, such as Plato, went to Sais and to Thebes to be initiated by Egyptian Teachers of Wisdom. The Mithraic Mysteries of the Persians, the Orphic and Bacchic Mysteries and the later Eleusinian semi-Mysteries of the Greeks, the Mysteries of Samothrace, Scythia, Chaldea, are familiar in name, at least, as household words. Even in the extremely diluted form of the Eleusinian Mysteries, their value is most highly praised by the most eminent men of Greece, as Pindar, Sophocles, Isoc- rates, Plutarch, and Plato. Especially were they regarded as useful with regard to post-mortem existence, as the Initiated learned that which ensured his future hap- piness. Sopater further alleged that Initia- tion established a kinship of the soul with the divine Nature, and in the exoteric Hymn lAnte-Nicene Library, Vol. XII. Clement of Alexan- dria. Btromata, bk. V., ch. xi. 21 Esoteric Christianity to Demeter covert references are made to the holy child, Iacchus, and to his death and resurrection, as dealt With in the Mysteries.‘ From Iamblichus, the great theurgist of the third and fourth centuries A.D., much may be learned as to the object of the Mys- teries. Theurgy was magic, “the last part of the sacerdotal science,”2 and was prac- tised in the Greater Mysteries, to evoke the appearance of superior Beings. The theory on Which these Mysteries Were based may be very briefly thus stated: There is ONE, prior to all beings, immovable, abiding in the solitude of His own unity. From THAT arises the Supreme God, the Self-begotten, the Good, the Source of all things, the Root, the God of Gods, the First Cause, unfolding Himself into Light“ From Him springs the Intelligible World, or ideal universe, the Universal Mind, the Nous, and the incor- poreal or intelligible Gods belong to this. lSee Article on “Mysteries,” Fmeye. Britannica, ninth edition. 9 Psellus, quoted in Iamblichus on the Mysteries. T. Taylor, p. 343, note on p. 23, second edition. 3Iannblichmz, as ante, p. 301. 22 The Hidden Side of Religions From this the World-Soul, to which belong the “divine intellectual forms which are present with the visible bodies of the Gods.” ’ Then come various hierarchies of superhu- man beings, Archangels, Arehons (Rulers) or Cosmocratores, Angels, Daimons, &c. Man is a being of a lower order, allied to these in his nature, and is capable of know- ing them; this knowledge was achieved in the Mysteries, and it led to union with God.“ In the Mysteries these doctrines are lIbz'd., p. 72. 9 The article on “ Mysticism” in the Encyclopedia Britan- nica. has the following on the teaching of Plotinus (204—206 A.D.): “The One [the Supreme God spoken of above] is exalted above the mus and the ‘ideas ’; it transcends ex- istence altogether and is not cognisable by reason. Re- maining itself in repose, it rays out, as it were, from its own fulness, an image of itself. which is called none, and which constitutes the system of ideas of the intelligible world. The soul is in turn the image or product of the nous, and the soul by its motion begets corporeal matter. The soul thus faces two ways—towards the mus, from which it springs, and towards the material life, which is its own product. Ethical endeavour consists in the re- pudiation of the sensible; material existence is itself estrangement from God ..... To reach the ultimate goal, thought itself must be left behind; for thought is a form of motion, and the desire of the soul is for the motionless 23 Esoteric Christianity expounded, “the progression from, and the regression of all things to, the One, and the entire domination of the One,” ‘ and, further, these different Beings were evoked, and ap- peared, sometimes to teach, sometimes, by Their mere presence, to elevate and purify. “The Gods,” says Iamblichus, “being he— nevolent and propitious, impart their light to theurgists in unenvying abundance, call- ing upwards their souls to themselves, pro- curing them a union with themselves, and accustoming them, while they are yet in body, to be separated from bodies, and to be led round to their eternal and intelligible principle.”a For “the soul having a. two- fold life, one being in conjunction with body, but the other being separate from all rest which belongs to the One. The union with transcend- ent deity is not so much knowledge or vision as ecstasy, coalescence, contact.” Neo-Platonism is thus “first of all a system of complete rationalism; it is assumed, in other words, that reason is capable of mapping out the whole system of things. But, inasmuch as a God is affirmed be- yond reason, the mysticism becomes in a sense the neces- sary complement of the would-be all-embracing rationalism. The system culminates in a mystical act.” ‘Iamblz'chus, as ante, p. 73. 9Iln'd., pp. 55, 56. 24 The Hidden Side of Religions body,” ’ it is most necessary to learn to sep- arate it from the body, that thus it may unite itself with the Gods by its intellectual ' and divine part, and learn the genuine prin- ciples of knowledge, and the truths of the intelligible world.2 “The presence of the Gods, indeed, imparts to us health of body, virtue of soul, purity of intellect, and, in one word, elevates everything in us to its proper nature. It exhibits that which is not body as body to the eyes of the soul, through those of the body.”3 When the Gods ap- pear, the soul receives “ a liberation from the passions, a transcendent perfection, and an energy entirely more excellent, and partici- pates of divine love and an immense joy.” ‘ By this we gain a divine life, and are ren- dered in reality divine.“ The culminating point of the Mysteries was when the Initiate became a God, whether by union with a divine Being out- side himself, or by the realisation of the (li- vine Self within him. This was termed ec- lIbz'd., pp. 118, 119. ’Ibz'd., pp. 118, 119. “Ibidu pp. 95, 100. ‘Ibz‘d., p. 101. ‘Ibz’d., p. 330. 25 Esoteric Christianity stasy, and was a state of What the Indian Yogi would term high Samadhi, the gross body being entranced and the freed soul effecting its own union with the Great One. This “ecstasy is not a faculty properly so called, it is a state of the soul, which trans—' forms it in such a way that it then per-p ceives What was previously hidden from it. The state will not be permanent until our union with God is irrevocable; here, in -, earth life, ecstasy is but a flash ...... Man can cease to become man, and become God; but man cannot be God and man at the same time.”‘ Mstates that he had reached this state “but three times as yet.” So also Proclus taught that the one sal- vation of the soul was to return to her intellectual form, and thus escape from the “circle of generation, from abundant wan- derings,” and reach true Being, “to the uniform and simple energy of the period of sameness, instead of the abundantly wan- dering motion of the period which is char- acterised by difference.” This is the life ‘ G. R. S. Mead. I’lotz'nus, p. 42. 26 The Hidden Side of Religions sought by those initiated by Orpheus into the Mysteries of Bacchus and Proserpine, and this is the result of the practice of the purificatory, or cathartic, virtues.l These virtues were necessary for the Greater Mysteries, as they concerned the purifying of the subtle body, in which the soul worked when out of the gross body. The political or practical virtues belonged to man’s ordinary life, and were required to some extent before he could be a candidate even for such a School as is described below. Then came the cathartic virtues, by which the subtle body, that of the emotions and lower mind, was purified; thirdly the intel- lectual, belonging to the Augoeides, or the light-form of the intellect; fourthly the contemplative, or paradigmatic, by which union with God was realised. Porphyry writes: “He who energises according to the practical virtues is a worthy man; but he who energises according to the purifying virtues is an angelic man, or is also a good daimon. He who energises according to the intellectual virtues alone is a God; but 11amblz’chus, p. 364, note on p. 134. 27 Esoteric Christianity he who energises according to the paradig- matic virtues is the Father of. the Gods.” ’ Much instruction was also given in the Mysteries by the archangelic and other hier- archies, and Pythagoras, the great teacher who was initiated in India, and who gave “the knowledge of things that are” to his pledged disciples, is said to have possessed such a knowledge of music that he could use it for the controlling of men’s wildest pas- sions, and the illuminating of their minds. Of this, instances are given by Iamblichus in his Life of Pythagoras. It seems proba- ble that the title of Theodidaktos, given to Ammonius Saccas, the master of Plotinus, referred less to the sublimity of his teach- ings than to this divine instruction received by him in the Mysteries. Some of the symbols used are explained by Iamblichus,2 who bids Porphyry remove from his thought the image of the thing symbolised and reach its intellectual mean- ing. Thus “mire” meant everything that was bodily and material; the “God sitting 1G. R. S. Mead. Orpheus, pp. 285, 286. sIaNIJJZz'chuse, p. 364. note on p. 134. 28 The Hidden Side of Religions above the lotus” signified that God tran- scended both the mire and the intellect, symbolised by the lotus, and was established in Himself, being seated. If “sailing in a ship,” H'is rule over the world was pictured. And so on.’ On this use of symbols Proclus remarks that “the Orphic method aimed at revealing divine things by means of sym- bols, a method common to all writers of di- vine lore.” ° The Pythagorean School in Magna Graecia was closed at the end of the sixth century B.C., owing to the persecution of the civil power, but other communities existed, keep- ing up the sacred tradition.3 Mead states that Plato intellectualised it, in order to protect it from an increasing profanation, and the Eleusinian rites preserved some of its forms, having lost its substance. The Neo-Platonists inherited from Pythagoras and Plato, and their works should be stud- ied by those who would realise something of the grandeur and the beauty preserved for the world in the Mysteries. lIamzblz'chu.sx, p. 285, et seq. ’G. R. S. Mead. Orpheus, p. 59. 31bid., p. 30. 29 Esoteric Christianity The Pythagorean School itself may serve asa type of the discipline enforced. On this Mead gives many interesting details,‘ and remarks: “The authors of antiquity are agreed that this discipline had succeeded in producing the highest examples, not only of the purest chastity and sentiment, but also a simplicity of manners, a delicacy, and a taste for serious pursuits which was unpar- alleled. This is admitted even by Christian writers.” The School had outer disciples, leading the family and social life, and the above quotation refers to these. In the in- ner School were three degrees—the first of Hearers, who studied for two years in si- lence, doing their best to master the teach- ings; the second degree was of Mathematici, wherein were taught geometry and music, the nature of number, form, colour, and sound; the third degree was of Physici, who mastered cosmogony and metaphysics. This led up to the true Mysteries. Candidates for the School must be “of an unblemished reputation and of a contented disposition.” The close identity between the methods lIbz'd., pp. 263, 271. 30 The Hidden Side of Religions and aims pursued in these various Mysteries and those of Yoga in India is patent to the most superficial observer. It is not, how- ever, necessary to suppose that the nations of antiquity drew from India; all alike drew from the one source, the Grand Lodge of Central Asia, which sent out its Initiates to every land. They all taught the same doc- trines, and pursued the same methods, lead- ing to the same ends. But there was much intercommunication between the Initiates of all nations, and there was a common language and a common symbolism. Thus Pythagoras journeyed among the Indians, and received in India a high Initiation, and Apollonius of Tyana later followed in his steps. Quite Indian in phrase as well as thought were the dying words of Plotinus: “Now I seek to lead back the Self within me to the All-self.” ‘ Among the Hindus the duty of teaching the supreme knowledge only to the worthy was strictly insisted on. “The deepest mystery of the end of knowledge . . . . is not to be declared to one who is not a son or 1 G. R. S. Mead. Plotinus, p. 20. 31 Esoteric Christianity a pupil, and who is not tranquil in mind.” 1 So again, after a sketch of Yoga we read: “Stand up! awake! having found the Great Ones, listen! The road is as difficult to tread as the sharp edge of a razor. Thus say the wise.” ’ The Teacher is needed, for written teaching alone does not suffice. The “end of knowledge” is to know God—— not only to believe; to become one with God—not only to worship afar off. Man must know the reality of the divine Exist- ence, and then know—not only vaguely be- lieve and hope—that his own innermost Self is one with God, and that the aim of life is to realise that unity. Unless religion can guide a man to that realisation, it is but “as sounding brass or a tinkling cymbal.” ’ So also it was asserted that man should learn to leave the gross body: “Let a man with firmness separate it [the soul] from his own body, as a grass-stalk from its sheath.” ‘ And it was written! “In the golden high- est sheath dwells the stainless, changeless ' Slwetdgshvataropam'shat, vi., 22. ”Kathopanishat, iii., 14. 31. Cor. xiii. 1. ‘Kathopanighat, vi. 17. 32 The Hidden Side of Religions Brahman; It is the radiant white Light of lights, known to the knowers of the Self.” ‘ “When the seer sees the golden-coloured Creator, the Lord, the Spirit, whose womb is Brahman, then, having thrown away merit and demerit, stainless, the wise one reaches the highest union.” ’ Nor were the Hebrews without their se- cret knowledge and their Schools of Initia- tion. The company of prophets at Naioth presided over by Samuel3 formed such a School, and the oral teaching was handed down by them. Similar Schools existed at Bethel and Jericho,“ and in Cruden’s Con- cordance " there is the following interesting note: “The Schools or Colleges of the proph- ets are the first [schools] of which we have any account in Scripture; where the chil- dren of the prophets, that is, their disciples, lived in the exercises of a retired and austere life, in study and meditation, and reading of the law of God. . . . These Schools, or Societies, of the prophets were ‘Mumlakopanishat, 11., ii. 9. ' 9112221., 111., i. 3. 31. Sam. xix. 20. 411. Kings ii. 2, 5. 5 Under “ School.” 3 33 Esoteric Christianity I succeeded by the Synagogues.” The Kab- bala, which contains the semi-public teach- ing, is, as it now stands, a. modern compila- tion, part of it being the work of Rabbi Moses de Leon, who died A.D. 1305. It con- sists of five books, Bahir, Zohar, Sepher Sephiroth, Sepher Yetzirah, and Asch Met- zareth, and is asserted to have been transmit- ted orally from very ancient times—as an- tiquity is reckoned historically. Dr. Wynn Westcott says that “Hebrew tradition as- signs the oldest parts of the Zohar to a date antecedent to the building of the second Temple,” and Rabbi Simeon ben Jochai is said to have written down some of it in the first century A.D. The Sepher Yetzirah is spoken of by Saadjah Gaon, who died A.D. 940, as “very ancient.” ‘ Some portions of the ancient oral teaching have been incorpo- rated in the Kabbala as it now stands, but the true archaic wisdom of the Hebrews re- mains in the guardianship of a few of the true sons of Israel. Brief as is this outline, it is sufficient to ' Dr. Wynn Westcott. Sepher Yetzirah, p. 9. 34 The Hidden Side of Religions show the existence of a hidden side in the religions of the world outside Christianity, and we may now examine the question whether Christianity was an exception to this universal rule. 35 CHAPTER II. THE HIDDEN SIDE OF CHRISTIANITY. (a) THE TESTIMONY OF THE SCRIPTUREs. HAVING seen that the religions of the past claimed with one voice to have a hidden side, to be custodians of “Mysteries,” and that this claim was endorsed by the seeking of initiation by the greatest men, we must now ascertain whether Christianity stands outside this circle of religions, and alone is without a Gnnsis, offering to the world only a simple faith and not a profound knowl- edge. Were it so, it would indeed be a sad and lamentable fact, proving Christianity to be intended for a class only, and not for all types of human beings. But that it is not so, we shall be able to prove beyond the pos- sibility of rational doubt. And that proof is the thing which Chris- tendom at this time most sorely needs, for the very flowerwof Christendom is _ perishing .- 36 Hidden Side of Christianity for lack of knowledge. If the esoteric teaching can be re-established and win pa- tient and earnest students, it will not be long before the occult is also restored. Dis- ciples of the Lesser Mysteries will become candidates for the Greater, and with the re- gaining of knowledge will come again the authority of teaching. And truly the need is great. For, looking at the world around us, we find that religion in the West is suf- fering from the very difficulty that theoret- ically we should expect to find. Christian- ity, having lost its mystic and esoteric teaching, is losing its hold on a large num- ber of the more highly educated, and the partial revival during the past few years is co-incident with the re-introduction of some mystic teaching. It is patent to every stu- dent of the closing forty years of the last century, that crowds of thoughtful and moral people have slipped away from the churches, because the teachings they re- ceived there outraged their intelligence and shocked their moral sense. It is idle to pre- tend that the wide-spread agnosticism of this period had its root either in lack of 37 Esoteric Christianity morality or in deliberate crookedness of mind. Everyone who carefully studies the phenomena presented will admit that men of strong intellect have been driven out of Christianity by the crudity of the religious ideas set before them, the contradictions in the authoritative teachings, the views as to God, man, and the universe that no trained intelligence could possibly admit. Nor can it be said that any kind of moral degrada- tion lay at the root of the revolt against the dogmas of the Church. The rebels were not too bad for their religion; on the con- trary, it was the religion that was too bad for them. The rebellion against popular Christianity was due to the awakening and the growth of conscience; it was the con- science that revolted, as well as the intelli- gence, against teachings dishonouring to God and man alike, that represented God as a tyrant, and man as essentially evil, gaining salvation by slavish submission. The reason for this revolt lay in the grad- ual descent of Christian teaching into so- called simplicity, so that the most ignorant might be able to grasp it. Protestant relig- 3s ‘ ' Hidden Side of Christianity ionists asserted loudly that nothing ought to be preached save that which every one could grasp, that the glory of the Gospel lay in its simplicity, and that the child and the unlearned ought to be able to understand and apply it to life. True enough, if by this it were meant that there are some re- ligious truths that all can grasp, and that a religion fails if it leaves the lowest, the most ignorant, the most dull, outside the pale of its elevating influence. But false, utterly false, if by this it be meant that re- ligion has no truths that the ignorant can- not understand, that it is so poor and limited a thing that it has nothing to teach which is above the thought of the unintelligent or above the moral purview of the degraded. False, fatally false, if such be the meaning; for as that view spreads, occupying the pul- pits and being sounded in the churches, many noble men and women, whose hearts are half-broken as they sever the links that bind them to their early faith, withdraw from the churches, and leave their places to be filled by the hypocritical and the igno- rant. They pass either into a state of pas- 39 ~ Esoteric Christianity sive agnosticism, or—if they be young and enthusiastic—into a condition of active ag- gression, not believing that that can be the highest which outrages alike intellect and conscience, and preferring the honesty of open unbelief to the drugging of the intel- lect and the conscience at the bidding of an authority in which they recognise nothing that is divine. In thus studying the thought of our time we see that the question of a hidden teach- ing in connection with Christianity becomes of vital importance. Is Christianity to sur- vive as the religion of the West? Is it to live through the centuries of the future, and to continue to play a part in moulding the thought of the evolving western races? If it is to live, it must regain the knowledge it has lost, and again have its mystic and its occult teachings; it must again stand forth as an authoritative teacher of spiritual verities, clothed with the only authority worth anything, the authority of knowl- s5 edge. If these teachings be regained, their influence will soon be seen in wider and deeper views of truth; dogmas, which now 40 Hidden Side of Christianity seem like mere shells and fetters, shall again be seen to be partial presentments of fun- damental realities. First, Esoteric Chris- tianity will reappear in the “Holy Place,” in the Temple, so that all who are capable of receiving it may follow its lines of pub- lished thought; and secondly, Occult Chris- tianity will again descend into the Adytum, dwelling behind the Veil which guards the “Holy of Holies,” into which only the Initi- ate may enter. Then again will occult teaching be within the reach of those who qualify themselves to receive it, according to the ancient rules, those who are willing in modern days to meet the ancient demands, made on all those who would fain know the reality and truth of spiritual things. Once again we turn our eyes to history, to see whether Christianity was unique among religions in having no inner teach- ing, or whether “it resembled all others in possessing this hidden treasure. Such a question is a matter of evidence, not of the- ory, and must be decided by the authority of the existing documents and not by the mere ipse dixit of modern Christians. 41 Esoteric Christianity As a matter of fact both the “New Testa- ment ” and the writings of the early Church make the same declarations as to the posses- sion by the Church of such teachings, and we learn from these the fact of the exist- ence of Mysteries—called the Mysteries of Jesus, or the Mystery of the Kingdom—the conditions imposed on candidates, some- thing of the general nature of the teachings given, and other details. Certain passages in the “New Testament” would remain en- tirely obscure, if it were not for the light thrown on them by the definite statements of the Fathers and Bishops of the Church, but in that light they became clear and in- telligible. It would indeed have been strange had it been otherwise when we consider the lines of religious thought which influenced primi- tive Christianity. Allied to the Hebrews,‘ the Persians, and the Greeks, tinged by the older faiths of India, deeply coloured by Syrian and Egyptian thought, this later branch of the great religious stem could not do other than again re-affirm the ancient traditions, and place in the grasp of west- 42 Hidden Side of Christianity ern races the full treasure of the ancient teaching. “The faith once delivered to the saints” would indeed have been shorn of its chief value if, when delivered to the West, the pearl of esoteric teaching had been with- held. The first evidence to be examined is that of the “New Testament.” For our purpose we may put aside all the vexed questions of different readings and difi'erent authors, that can only be decided by scholars. Criti- cal scholarship has much to say on the age of MSS., on the authenticity of documents, and so on. But we need not concern our- selves with these. We may accept the ca- nonical Scriptures, as showing what was believed in the early Church as to the teaching of the Christ and of His imme- diate followers, and see what they say as to the existence of a secret teaching given only to the few. Having seen the words put into the mouth of Jesus Himself, and regarded by the Church as of supreme authority, we will look at the writings of the great apos- tle S. Paul; then we will consider the state— ments made by those who inherited the 43 Esoteric Christianity apostolic tradition and guided the Church during the first centuries A.D. Along this unbroken line of tradition and written testi- mony the proposition that Christianity had a hidden side can be established. We shall further find that the Lesser Mysteries of mystic interpretation can be traced through the centuries to the beginning of the 19th century, and that though there were no Schools of Mysticism recognised as prepara- tory to Initiation, after the disappearance of the Mysteries, yet great Mystics, from time to time, reached the lower stages of ecstasy, by their own sustained efforts, aided doubt- less by invisible Teachers. The words of the Master Himself are clear and definite, and were, as we shall see, quoted by Origen as referring to the secret teaching preserved in the Church. “And when he was alone, they that were about Him with the twelve asked of Him the parable. And He said unto them, “Unto you it is given to know the mysteryv’ of the kingdom of God, but unto them that are without, all these things are done in parables.”’ And later: “With many such 44 Hidden Side of Christianity parables spake He the word unto them, as they were able to hear it. But without a parable spake He not unto them; and when they were alone He expounded all things to His disciples.”1 Mark the significant words, “when they were alone,” and the phrase, “them that are without.” So also in the version of S. Matthew: “Jesus sent the multitude away, and went into the house; and His disciples came unto Him.” These teachings given “in the house,” the innermost meanings of His instructions, were alleged to be handed on from teacher to teacher. The Gospel gives, it will be noted, the allegorical mystic explanation, that which we have called The Lesser Mys- teries, but the deeper meaning was said to be given only to the Initiates. Again, Jesus tells even His apostles: “I have yet many things to say to you, but ye cannot bear them now.”2 Some of them were probably said after His death, when He was seen of His disciples, “speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of 18. Mark iv. 10, 11, 33, 34. See also S. Matt. xiii. 11, 34, 36, and 8. Luke viii. 10. 9 S. John xvi. 12. 45 Esoteric Christianity God.” ’ None of these have been publicly recorded, but who can believe that they were neglected or forgotten, and were not handed down as a priceless possession? There was a tradition in the Church that He visited His apostles for a considerable period after His death, for the sake of giv- ing them instruction—a fact that will be referred to later—and in the famous Gnos- tic treatise, the Pz'stz's Sophia, we read: “It came to pass, when Jesus had risen from the dead, that He passed eleven years speaking with His disciples and instructing them.”2 Then there is the phrase, which many would fain soften and explain away: “Give not that which is holy to the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine” ’— a precept which is of general application indeed, but was considered by the early Church to refer to the secret teachings. It should be remembered that the words had not the same harshness of sound in the an- cient days as they have now; for the words 1Acts i. 3. 9Loc. cz't. Trans. by G. R. S. Mead. I. i. 1. 88. Matt. vii. 6. 46 Hidden Side of Christianity “dogs”—like “the vulgar,” “the profane” -—was applied by those within a certain cir- cle to all who were outside its pale, Wheth- er by a society or association, or by a nation —as by the Jews to all Gentiles.‘ It was sometimes used to designate those who were outside the circle of Initiates, and we find it employed in that sense in the early Church; those who, not having been initiated into the Mysteries, were regarded as being out- side “the kingdom of God,” or “the spirit- ual Israel,” had this name applied to them. There were several names, exclusive of the term “The Mystery,” or “The Myste- ries,” used to designate the sacred circle of the Initiates or connected with Initiation: “The Kingdom,” “The Kingdom of God,” “The Kingdom of Heaven,” “The Narrow Path,” “The Strait Gate,” “The Perfect,” “The Saved,” “Life Eternal,” “Life,” “The Second Birth,” “A Little One,” “A Little Child.” The meaning is made plain by the use of these words in early Christian 1A3 to the Greek woman: “It is not meet to take the children’s bread, and to cast it unto the dogs. ”—8. Mark vii. 27. 47 Esoteric Christianity writings, and in some cases even outside the Christian pale. Thus the term, “The Per- fect,” was used by the Essenes, who had three orders in their communities: the Neo- phytes, the Brethren, and the Perfect—the latter being Initiates; and it is employed generally in that sense in old writings. “The Little Child” was the ordinary name for a candidate just initiated, 73.6., who had just taken his “second birth.” When we know this use, many obscure and otherwise harsh passages become intel- ligible. “Then said one unto Him: Lord, are there few that be saved? And He said unto them: Strive to enter in at the strait gate; for many, I say unto you, will seek to enter in and shall not be able.”1 If this be applied in the ordinary Protestant way to salvation from everlasting hell-fire, the statement becomes incredible, shocking. No Saviour of the world can be supposed to assert that many will seek to avoid hell and enter heaven, but will not be able to do so. But as applied to the narrow gateway of Initiation and to salvation from rebirth, lS. Luke xiii. 23, 24. 48 Hidden Side of Christianity it is perfectly true and natural. So again: “Enter ye in at the strait gate; for wide is the gate and broad is the way that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat; because strait is the gate and narrow is the way which leadeth unto life; and few there be that find it.” 1 The warn- ing which immediately follows against the false prophets, the teachers of the dark Mysteries, is most apposite in this connec- tion. No student can miss the familiar ring of these words used in this same sense in other writings. The “ancient narrow way” is familiar to all; the path “difficult to tread as the sharp edge of a razor,” ’ al- ready mentioned; the going “from death to death” of those who follow the flower- strewn path of desires, who do not know God; for those men only become immortal and escape from the wide mouth of death, from ever repeated destruction, who have quitted all desires.1 The allusion to death is, of course, to the repeated births of the soul into gross material existence, regarded lS. Matt. vii. 13, 14. 9 Kaflwpam'ghat, H. iv. 10, 11. 3Bfihaddmpyakopanighat, IV. iv. 7. 4 49 Esoteric Christianity always as “death” compared to the “life”! of the higher and subtler worlds. This “Strait Gate” was the gateway of Initiation, and through it a candidate en- tered “The Kingdom.” And it ever has been, and must be, true that only a few can enter that gateway, though myriads—an exceedingly “great multitude, which no man could number,” 1 not a few—enter into the happiness of the heaven-world. So also spoke another great Teacher, nearly three thousand years earlier: “Among thousands of men scarce one striveth for perfection; of the successful strivers scarce one know- eth me in essence.”2 For the Initiates are few in each generation, the flower of hu- manity; but no gloomy sentence of ever- lasting woe is pronounced in this statement on the vast majority of the human race. The saved are, as Proclus taught,’ those who escape from the circle of generation, within which humanity is bound. In this connection we may recall the story of the young man who came to Jesus, and, lRev. vii. 9. 9Bahgavad Gitd, vii. 3. 3Ante, p. 26. 50 Hidden Side of Christianity addressing Him as “Good Master,” asked how he might win eternal life—the well- recognised liberation from rebirth by knowledge of God.1 His first answer was the regular exoteric precept: “Keep the commandments.” But iwhen the young man answered: “All these things have I kept from my youth up;” then, to that conscience free from all knowledge of trans- gression, came the answer of the true Teacher: “If thou wilt be perfect, go and sell that thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven; and come and follow me.” “If thou wilt be per- fect,” be a member of the Kingdom, poverty and obedience must be embraced. And then to His own disciples Jesus explains that a rich man can hardly enter the Kingdom of Heaven, such entrance being more difficult than for a camel to pass through the eye of a needle; with men such entrance could not be, with God all things were possible. ' Only God in man can pass that barrier. 1It must be remembered that the Jews believed that all imperfect souls returned to live again on earth. ’8. Matt. xix. 16-26. 51 Esoteric Christianity This text has been variously explained away, it being obviously impossible to take it in its surface meaning, that a rich man cannot enter a post-mortem state of happi- ness. Into that state the rich man may enter as well as the poor, and the universal practice of Christians shows that they do not for one moment believe that riches im- peril their happiness after death. But if the real meaning of the Kingdom of Heav- en be taken, we have the expression of a simple and direct fact. For that know- ledge of God which is Eternal Life1 cannot be gained till everything earthly is surren- dered, cannot be learned until everything has been sacrificed. The man must give up not only earthly wealth, which henceforth may only pass through his hands as stew- ard, but he must give up his inner wealth as well, so far as he holds it as his own against the world; until he is stripped naked he cannot pass the narrow gateway. Such has ever been a condition of Initia- tion, and “poverty, obedience, chastity,” has been the vow of the candidate. ‘S. Jolm xvii. 3. 52 Hidden Side of Christianity The “second birth” is another well-recog- nised term for Initiation; even now in In- dia the higher castes are called “twice- born,” and the ceremony that makes them twice-born is a ceremony of Initiation— mere husk truly, in these modern days, but the “pattern of things in the heavens.”1 When Jesus is speaking to Nicodemus, He states that “Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God,” and this birth is spoken of as that “of water and the Spirit; ” " this is the first Initiation; a later one is that of “the Holy Ghost and fire,”3 the baptism of the Initiate in his manhood, as the first is that of birth, which welcomes him as “the Little Child” enter- ing the Kingdom.‘ How thoroughly this imagery was familiar among the mystics of the Jews is shown by the surprise evinced by Jesus when Nicodemus stumbled over His mystic phraseology: “Art thou a mas-' ter of Israel, and knowest not these. things?“ ' Another precept of Jesus which remains lHeb. ix. 23. ”S. John iii. 3, 5. 38. Matt. iii. 11. 4Ibz'd., xviii. 3. 5S. John iii. 10. 53 Esoteric Christianity as “a hard saying” to his followers is: “Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect.”1 The ordi- nary Christian knows that he cannot possi- bly obey this command; full of ordinary human frailties and weaknesses, how can he become perfect as God is perfect? See- ing the impossibility of the achievement set before him, he quietly puts it aside, and thinks no more about it. But seen as the crowning effort of many lives of steady improvement, as the triumph of the God Within us over the lower nature, it comes Within calculable distance, and we recall the words of Porphyry, how the man who achieves “the paradigmatic virtues is the Father of the Gods,” ’ and that in the Mys- teries these virtues were acquired. S. Paul follows in the footsteps of his Master, and speaks in exactly the same sense, but, as might be expected from his organising work in the Church, with great- er explicitness and clearness. The student should read with attention chapters ii. and iii., and verse 1 of chaper iv. of the First lS. Matt. v. 48. 2Ante, p. 28. 54 Hidden Side of Christianity Epistle to the Corinthians, remembering, as he reads, that the words are addressed to baptised and communicant members of the Church, full members from the modern standpoint, although described as babes and carnal by the Apostle. They were not catechumens or neophytes, but men and women who were in complete possession of all the privileges and responsibilities of Church membership, recognised by the Apostle as being separate from the world, and expected not to behave as men of the world. They were, in fact, in possession of all that the modern Church gives to its members. Let us summarise the Apostle’s words: “I came to you bearing the divine testi- mony, not alluring you with human Wis- dom but with the power of the Spirit. Truly ‘ we speak wisdom among them that are perfect,’ but it is no human wisdom. ‘ We speak the wisdom of God in a mys- tery, even the hidden wisdom, which God ordained before the world’ began, and which none even of the princes of this world know. The things of that wisdom 55 Esoteric Christianity are beyond men’s thinking, ‘ but God hath revealed them unto us by his Spirit . . . . the deep things of God,’ ‘ which the Holy Ghost. teacheth.’ 1 These are spiritual things, to be discerned only by the spiritual man, in whom is the mind of Christ. ‘And I, brethren, could not speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, even as unto babes in Christ. . . . Ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able. For ye are yet carnal.’ ‘As a wise master-builder2 I have laid the foun- dation,’ and ‘ ye are the temple of God, and the Spirit of God dwelleth in you.’ ‘ Let a man so account of us, as of the ministers of Christ, and stewards of the Mysteries of God.’ ” Can any one read this passage—and all that has been done in the summary is to bring out the salient points—without recog- 1Note how this chimes in with the promise of Jesus in S. John xvi. 12—14: “I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now. Howbeit when He, the Spirit of Truth, is come, He will guide you into all truth ..... He will show you things to come. . . . He shall receive of mine, and shall show it unto you.” 9 Another technical name in the Mysteries. 56 Hidden Side of Christianity nising the fact that the Apostle possessed a divine wisdom given in the Mysteries, that his Corinthian followers were not yet able to receive? And note the recurring techni- cal terms: the “wisdom,” the “wisdom of God in a mystery,” the “hidden wisdom,” known only to the “spiritual” man, spoken of only among the “perfect,” Wisdom from which the non-“spiritual,” the “babes in Christ,” the “carnal,” were excluded, known to the “wise master-builder,” the “steward of the Mysteries of God.” Again and again he refers to these Mys- teries. Writing to the Ephesian Christians he says that “by revelation,” by the unveil- ing, had been “made known unto me the Mystery,” and hence his “knowledge in the Mystery of Christ”; all might know of the “fellowship of the Mystery.” 1 Of this Mystery, he repeated to the Colossians, he was “made a minister,” “the Mystery which hath been hid from ages and from generations, but now is made manifest to His saints”; not to the world, nor even to Christians, but only to the Holy Ones. To lEph. iii. 3, 4, 9. 57 Esoteric Christianity them was unveiled “the glory of this Mys- tery ”; and what was it? “Christin you” —a significant phrase, which we shall see, in a moment, belonged to the life of the Initiate; thus ultimately must every man learn the wisdom, and become “perfect in Christ Jesus.”1 These Colossians he bids pray “that God would open to us a door of utterance, to speak the mystery of Christ,” ’ a passage to which S. Clement refers as one in which the apostle “clearly reveals that knowledge belongs not to all.” 3 So also he writes to his loved Timothy, bidding him select his deacons from those who hold “the Mystery of the faith in a pure conscience,” that great “Mystery of Godliness,” that he had learned,‘ knowledge of which was nec- essary for the teachers of the Church. lCol. i. 23, 25—28. But S. Clement, in his Stromata, translates “ every man,” as “ the whole man. ” See bk. V., ch. x. ’00]. iv. 3. 3Ante-Nicene Library, V01. XII. Clement of Alexan- dria. Stromata, bk. V., ch. x. Some additional sayings of the Apostles will be found in the quotations from Clem- ent, showing what meaning they bore in the minds of those who succeeded the apostles, and were living in the same atmosphere of thought. ‘I. Tim. iii. 9, 16. 58 Hidden Side of Christianity Now S. Timothy holds an important po- sition, as representing the next generation of Christian teachers. He was a pupil of S. Paul, and was appointed by him to guide and rule a portion of the Church. He had been, we learn, initiated into the Mysteries by S. Paul himself, and reference is made to this, the technical phrases once more serving as a clue. “This charge I commit unto thee, son Timothy, according to the prophecies which went before on thee,” 1 the solemn benediction of the Initiator, who admitted the candidate; but not alone was the Initiator present: “Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by prophecy, by the laying on of the hands of the Presbytery,” ’ of the Elder Brothers. And he reminds him to lay hold of that “eternal life, whereunto thou art also called, and hast professed a good profession before many witnesses”"—the vow of the new Initiate, pledged in the presence of the Elder Brothers, and of the assembly of Ini- tiates. The knowledge then given was the sacred charge of which S. Paul cries out so 1I. Tim. i. 18. 1'I bid., iv. 14. 3Ibz'd., vi. 12. 59 Esoteric Christianity forcibly: “0 Timothy, keep that which is committed to thy trustm—not the know- ledge commonly possessed by Christians, as to which no special obligation lay upon S. Timothy, but the sacred deposit committed to his trust as an Initiate, and essential to the welfare of the Church. S. Paul later .recurs again to this, laying stress on the supreme importance of the matter in a way that would be exaggerated had the know- ledge been the common property of Chris— tian men: “Hold fast the form of sound words which thou hast heard of me. . . . That good thing which was committed unto thee, keep by the Holy Ghost which dwell- eth in usm—as serious an adjuration as human lips could frame. Further, it was his duty to provide for the due transmission of this sacred deposit, that it might be handed on to the future, and the Church might never be left without teachers: “The things that thou hast heard of me among many witnesses ”—the sacred oral teachings given in the assembly of Initiates, who bore witness to the accuracy of the trans- IIb2,'d., 20. 9II. Tim. i. 13, 14. 6O Hidden Side of Christianity mission—“the same commit thou to faith- ful men, who shall be able to teach othersl also.”1 \ The knowledge—or, if the phrase be pre- ferred, the supposition—that the Church possessed these hidden teachings throws a flood of light on the scattered remarks made by S. Paul about himself, and when they are gathered together, we have an outline of the evolution of the Initiate. 8. Paul asserts that though he was already among the perfect, the initiated—for he says: “Let us, therefore, as many as be perfect, be thus minded”—he had not yet “attained,” was indeed not yet wholly “perfect,” for he had not yet won Christ, he had not yet reached the “high calling of God in Christ,” “the power of His resurrec- tion, and the fellowship of His sufferings, being made conformable unto His death;” and he was striving, he says, “if by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead.”2 For this was the Initiation that liberated, that made the Initiate the Perfect Master, the Risen Christ, freeing lIIn'd., ii. 2. 2Phil. iii. 8, 10-12, 14, 15. 61 Esoteric Christianity Him finally from the “dead,” from the hu- manity within the circle of generation, from the bonds that fettered the soul to gross matter. Here again we have a num- ber of technical terms, and even the surface reader should realise that the “resurrection of the dead ” here spoken of cannot be the ordinary resurrection of the modern Chris- tian, supposed to be inevitable for all men, and therefore obviously not requiring any special struggle on the part of any one to attain to it. In fact the very word “at- tain” would be out of place in referring to a universal and inevitable human expe- rience. S. Paul could not avoid that resur- rection, according to the modern Christian view. What then was the resurrection to attain which he was making such strenuous efforts? Once more the only answer comes from the Mysteries. In them the Initiate approaching the Initiation that liberated from the cyle of rebirth, the circle of gene- ration, was called “the suffering Christ;” he shared the sufferings of the Saviour of the world, was crucified mystically, “made conformable to His death,” and then at- 62 Hidden Side of Christianity tained the resurrection, the fellowship of the glorified Christ, and, after that, death had over him no power.1 This was “the prize” towards which the great Apostle was pressing, and he urged “as many as be per- fect,” not the ordinary believer, thus also to strive. Let them not be content with what they had gained, but still press on- wards. This resemblance of the Initiate to the Christ is, indeed, the very groundwork of the Greater Mysteries, as we shall see more in detail when we study “The Mystical Christ.” The Initiate was no longer to look on Christ as outside himself: “Though we have known Christ after the flesh, yet now henceforth know we Him no more.” ’ The ordinary believer had “put on Christ;” “as many of you as have been baptised into Christ have put on Christ.”3 Then they were the “babes in Christ” to whom reference has already been made, and Christ was the Saviour to whom they lRev. i. 18. “I am He that liveth, and was dead; and «f behold, I am alive for evermore, Amen.” sII. Cor. v. 16. 3Gal. iii. 27. 63 Esoteric Christianity looked for help, knowing Him “after the flesh.” But when they had conquered the lower nature and were no longer “carnal,” then they were to enter on a higher path, and were themselves to become Christ. This which he himself had already reached, was the longing of the Apostle for his fol- lowers: “My little children, of whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you.”1 Already he was their spiritual father, having “begotten you through the gospel.”2 But now “again” he was as a parent, as their mother to bring them to the second birth. Then the infant Christ, the Holy Child, was born in the soul “the hidden man of the heart ”;3 the Initi- ate thus became that “Little Child”; henceforth he was to live out in his own person the life of the Christ, until he be- came the “perfect man,” growing “unto the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ.’H Then he, as S. Paul was doing, filled up the sufferings of Christ in his own flesh,‘5 and always bore “about in the body 1Gal. iv. 19. 9 I. Cor. iv. 15. 31. S. Pet. iii. 4. ‘Eph. iv. 13. 5Col. i. 24. 64 Hidden Side of Christianity the dying of the Lord Jesus,”1 so that he could truly say: “I am crucified with Christ: nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in me.” ’ Thus was the Apos- tle himself suffering; thus he describes himself. And when the struggle is over, how diflerent is the calm tone of triumph from the strained efiort of the earlier years: “I am now ready to be offered, and the time of my departure is at hand. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith; henceforth there is laid up for me a crown of right- eousness.“ This was the crown given to “him that overcometh,” of whom it is said by the ascended Christ: “I will make him a pillar in the temple of my God; and he shall go no more out.” For after the “Resurrection” the Initiate has become the Perfect Man, the Master, and He goes out no more from the Temple, but from it serves and guides the worlds. It may be well to point out, ere closing this chapter, that S. Paul himself sanctions lII. Cor. iv. 10. 9 Gal. ii. 20. 3II. Tim. iv. 6—8. 4Rev. iii. 12. 5 65 Esoteric Christianity the use of the theoretical mystic teaching in explaining the historical events recorded in the Scriptures. The history therein writ- ten is not regarded by him as a mere record of facts, which occurred on the physical plane. A true mystic, he saw in the physi- cal events the shadows of the universal truths ever unfolding in higher and inner worlds, and knew that the events selected for preservation in occult writings were such as were typical, the explanation of which would subserve human instruction. Thus he takes the story of Abraham, Sarai, Hagar, Ishmael, and Isaac, and saying, “which things are an allegory,” he pro- ceeds to give the mystical interpretation.‘ Referring to the escape of the Israelites from Egypt, he speaks of the Red Sea as a baptism, of the manna and the water as spiritual meat and spiritual drink, of the rock from which the water flowed as Christ.” He sees the great mystery of the union of Christ and His Church in the human relation of husband and wife, and speaks of Christians as the flesh and the 1Gal. iv. 22—31. 91 Cor. x. 1—4. 66 Hidden Side of Christianity bones of the body of Christ.1 The writer of the Epistle to the Hebrews allegorises the whole Jewish system of worship. In the Temple he sees a pattern of the heavenly Temple, in the High Priest he sees Christ, in the sacrifices the offering of the spotless Son; the priests of the Temple are but “the example and shadow of heavenly things,” of the heavenly priesthood serving in “the true tabernacle.” A most elaborate alle- gory is thus worked out in chapters iii.—x., and the writer alleges that the Holy Ghost thus signified the deeper meaning; all was “a figure for the time.” In this view of the sacred writings, it is not alleged that the events recorded did not take place, but only that their physical hap- pening was a matter of minor importance. And such explanation is the unveiling of the Lesser Mysteries, the mystic teaching which is permitted to be given to the world. It is not, as many think, a mere play of the imagination, but is the outcome of a true intuition, seeing the patterns in the heav- ens, and not only the shadows cast by them on the screen of earthly time. 1Eph. v. 23—32. 67 CHAPTER III. THE HIDDEN SIDE OF CHRISTIANITY (concluded). (b) THE TESTIMONY OF THE CHURCH. WHILE it may be that some would be will- ing to admit the possession by the Apostles and their immediate successors of a deeper knowledge of spiritual things than was current among the masses of the believers around them, few will probably be willing to take the next step, and, leaving that charmed circle, accept as the depository of their sacred learning the Mysteries of the Early Church. Yet we have S. Paul pro- viding for the transmission of the unwrit- ten teaching, himself initiating S. Timothy, and instructing S. Timothy to initiate others in his turn, who should again hand it on to yet others. We thus see the provision of four successive generations of teachers, spoken of. in the Scriptures themselves, and 68 Hidden Side of Christianity these would far more than overlap the wri- ters of the Early Church, who bear witness to the existence of the Mysteries. For among these are pupils of the Apostles themselves,-though the most definite state- ments belong to those removed from the Apostles by one intermediate teacher. Now, as soon as we begin to study the wri- tings of the Early Church, we are met by the facts that there are allusions which are only intelligible by the existence of the Mysteries, and then statements that the Mysteries are existing. This might, of course, have been expected, seeing the point at which the New Testament leaves the matter, but it is satisfactory to find the facts answer to the expectation. The first witnesses are those called the Apostolic Fathers, the disciples of the Apos- tles; but very little of their writings, and that disputed, remains. Not being written controversially, the statements are not as categorical as those of the later writers. Their letters are for the encouragement of the believers. Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna, and fellow-disciple with Ignatius of S. 69 Esoteric Christianity John,1 expresses a hope that his correspon- dents are “well versed in the sacred Scrip- tures and that nothing is hid from you; but to me this privilege is not yet granted ”’— writing, apparently, before reaching full Initiation. Barnabas speaks of communi- cating “ some portion of what I have myself received,” 3 and after expounding the Law mystically, declares that “we then, rightly understanding His commandments, explain them as the Lord intended.”4 Ignatius, Bishop of Antioch, a disciple of S. John,“ speaks of himself as “not yet perfect in Jesus Christ. For I now begin to be a dis- ciple, and I speak to you as my fellow-disci- ples,” ° and he speaks of them as “initiated into the mysteries of the Gospel with Paul, ‘ Vol. I. The Martyrdom of Ignatius, ch. iii. The translations used are those of Clarke’s Ante-Nicene Library, a most useful compendium of Christian antiquity. The number of the volume which stands first in the refer ences is the number of the volume in that Series. 9 I bid. The Epistle of Polgcary), ch. xii. 3I bid. The Epistle of Barnabas, eh. i. ‘Ibid., ch. x. 5 I bid. The Martyrdom of Ignatius, ch. i. ‘I bid. F4n'stle of Ignatius to the l/bhesians, ch. iii. 70 Hidden Side of Christianity the holy, the martyred.“ Again he says: “Might I not write to you things more full of mystery? But I fear to do so, lest I should inflict injury on you Who are but babes. Pardon me in this respect, lest, as not being able to receive their weighty im- port, ye should be strangled by them. For even I, though I am bound [for Christ] and am able to understand heavenly things, the angelic orders, and the diflerent sorts of angels and hosts, the distinction between powers and dominions, and the diversities between thrones and authorities, the mighti- ness of the aeons, and the pre-eminence of the cherubim and seraphim, the sublimity of the Spirit, the kingdom of. the Lord, and above all the incomparable majesty of Al- mighty God—though I am acquainted with these things, yet am I not therefore by any means perfect, nor am I such a disciple as Paul or Peter.”2 This passage is interest- ing, as indicating that the organisation of the celestial hierarchies was one of the sub- jects in which instruction was given in the Mysteries. Again he speaks of the High lIbz'd., ch. xii. 9] bid, to the Trallz’ans, ch. v. 71 Esoteric Christianity Priest, the Hierophant, “to whom the holy of holies has been committed, and who alone ' has been entrusted with the secrets of God.” 1 We come next to S. Clement of Alexan- dria and his pupil Origen, the two writers of the second and third centuries who tell us most about the Mysteries in the Early Church; though the general atmosphere is full of mystic allusions, these two are clear and categorical in their statements that the Mysteries were a recognised institution. N ow S. Clement was a disciple of Pantae- nus, and he speaks of him and of two others, said to be probably Tatian and The- odotus, as “preserving the tradition of the blessed doctrine derived directly from the holy Apostles, Peter, James, John, and Paul,“ his link with the Apostles them- selves consisting thus of only one intermedi- ary. He was the head of the Catechetical School of Alexandria in A.D. 189, and died about A.D. 220. Origen, born about A.D. 185, was his pupil, and he is, perhaps, the most learned of the Fathers, and a man lIbz'd., to the Philadelphiaiw, ch. ix. 9 Vol. IV. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. I. ch. i. 72 Hidden Side of Christianity of the rarest moral beauty. These are the witnesses from whom we receive the most important testimony as to the existence of definite Mysteries in the Early Church. The Stromata, or Miscellanies, of S. Clement are our source of information about the Mysteries in his time. He him- self speaks of these writings as a “miscel- lany of Gnostic notes, according to the true philosophy,”1 and also describes them as memoranda of the teachings he had himself received from Pantaenus. The passage is instructive: “The Lord . . . allowed us to communicate of those divine Mysteries, and of that holy light, to those who are able to receive them. He did not certainly disclose to the many what did not belong to the many; but to the few to whom He knew that they belonged, who were capable of receiving and being moulded according to them. But secret things are entrusted to speech, not to writing, as is the case with God. And if one say2 that it is written, 1Vol. IV. St’l'omata, bk. I. ch. xxviii. 9 It appears that even in those days there were some who objected to any truth being taught secretly! 73 Esoteric Christianity ‘ There is nothing secret which shall not be revealed, nor hidden which shall not be dis- closed,’ let him also hear from us, that to him who hears secretly, even what is secret ' shall be manifested. This is what was pre- dicted by this oracle. And to him who is able secretly to observe what is delivered to him, that which is veiled shall be disclosed as truth; and what is hidden to the many shall appear manifest to the few. . . . The Mysteries are delivered mystically, that what is spoken may be in the mouth of the speaker; rather not in his voice, but in his understanding. . . . The writing of these memoranda of mine, I well know, is weak when compared with that spirit, full of grace, which I was privileged to hear. But it will be an image to recall the archetype to him who was struck with the Thyrsus.” The Thyrsus, we may here interject, was the wand borne by Initiates, and candidates were touched with it during the ceremony of Initiation. It had a mystic significance, symbolising the spinal cord and the pineal gland in the Lesser Mysteries, and a Rod, known to Occultists, in the Greater. To 74 Hidden Side of Christianity say, therefore, “to him who was struck with the Thyrsus” was exactly the same as to say, “to him who was initiated in the Mysteries.” Clement proceeds: “We pro- fess not to explain secret things sufficiently —far from it—but only to recall them to memory, whether we have forgot aught, or whether for the purpose of not forgetting. Many things, I well know, have escaped us, through length of time, that have dropped away unwritten. . . . There are then some things of which we have no recollec- tion; for the power that was in the blessed men was great.” A frequent experience of those taught by the Great Ones, for Their presence stimulates and renders active powers which are normally latent, and which the pupil, unassisted, cannot evoke. “There are also some things which re- mained unnoted long, which have now es- caped; and others which are effaced, hav- ing faded away in the mind itself, since such a task is not easy to those not experi- enced; these I revive in my commentaries. Some things I purposely omit, in the exer- cise of a wise selection, afraid to write what 75 Esoteric Christianity I guarded against speaking; not grudging —for that were wrong—but fearing for my readers, lest they should stumble by taking them in a wrong sense; and, as the proverb says, we should be found ‘ reaching a sword to a child.’ For it is impossible that what has been written should not escape [become known], although remaining unpublished by me. But being always revolved, using the one only voice, that of writing, they an- swer nothing to him that makes enquiries beyond what is written; for they require of necessity the aid of some one, either of him who wrote, or of some one else who has walked in his footsteps. Some things my treatise will hint; on some it will linger; some it will merely mention. It Will try to speak imperceptibly, to exhibit secretly, and to demonstrate silently.” 1 This passage, if it stood alone, would suffice to establish the existence of a secret teaching in the Early Church. But it stands by no means alone. In Chapter xii. of this same Book I., headed, “The Myste- ries of the Faith not to be divulged to lIbz'd., bk. 1., ch. i. 76 Hidden Side of Christianity all,” Clement declares that, since others than the wise may see his work, “it is requisite, therefore, to hide in a Mystery the wisdom spoken, which the Son of God taught.” Purified tongue of the speaker, purified ears of the bearer, these were necessary. “Such were the impediments in the way of my writing. And even now I fear, as it is said, ‘to cast the pearls before swine, lest they tread them under foot and turn and rend us.’ For it is difficult to exhibit the really pure and transparent words respect- in g the true light, to swinish and untrained hearers. For scarcely could anything which they could hear be more ludicrous than. these to the multitude; nor any sub- jects on the other hand more admirable or more inspiring to those of noble nature. But the wise do not utter with their mouth what they reason in council. ‘ But what ye hear in the ear,’ said the Lord, ‘proclaim upon the houses ’; bidding them receive the secret traditions of the true knowledge, and expound them aloft and conspicuously; and as we have heard in the ear, so to deliver them to whom it is requisite; but not en- 77 Esoteric Christianity joining us to communicate to all without distinction, what is said to them in para- bles. But there is only a delineation in the memoranda, Which have the truth sown sparse and broadcast, that it may escape the notice of those who pick up seeds like jackdaws; but when they find a good hus- bandman, each one of them will germinate and will produce corn.” Clement might have added that to “pro- claim upon the houses” was to proclaim or expound in the assembly of the Perfect, the Initiated, and by no means to shout aloud to the man in the street. Again he says that those who are “still blind and dumb, not having understanding, or the undazzled and keen vision of the contemplative soul . . . must stand outside of the divine choir. . . . Wherefore, in ac- cordance with the method of concealment, the truly sacred Word, truly divine and most necessary for us, deposited in the shrine of truth, was by the Egyptians in- dicated by what were called among them adyta, and by the Hebrews by the veil. Only the consecrated . . . were allowed 78 Hidden Side of Christianity access to them. For Plato also thought it not lawful for ‘the impure to touch the pure.’ Thence the prophecies and oracles are spoken in enigmas, and the Mysteries are not exhibited incontinently to all and sundry, but only after certain purifications and previous instructions.”1 He then de- scants at great length on Symbols, expound- ing Pythagorean, Hebrew, Egyptian,2 and then remarks that the ignorant .and un- learned man fails in understanding them. “But the Gnostic apprehends. Now then it is not wished that all things should be exposed indiscriminately to all and sundry, or the benefits of wisdom communicated to those who have not even in a dream been purified in soul (for it is not allowed to hand to every chance comer what has been pro- cured with such laborious efforts); nor are the Mysteries of the Word to be expounded to the profane.” The Pythagoreans and Plato, Zeno, and Aristotle had exoteric and esoteric teachings. The philosophers estab- lished the Mysteries, for “was it not more beneficial for the holy and blessed contem- lIln'd., bk. V., ch. iv. “10%., ch. v.—viii. 79 Esoteric Christianity plation of realities to be concealed?” 1 The Apostles also approved of “veiling the Mys- teries of the Faith,” “for there is an in- struction to the perfect,” alluded to in Co- lossians i. 9—11 and 25—27. “So that, on the one hand, then, there are the Mysteries which were hid till the time of the Apos- tles, and were delivered by them as they received from the Lord, and, concealed in the Old Testament, were manifested to the saints. And, on the other hand, there is ‘ the riches of the glory of the mystery in the Gentiles,’ which is faith and hope in Christ; which in another place he has called the ‘foundation.’” He quotes S. Paul to show that this “knowledge belongs not to i all,” and says, referring to Heb. v. and vi., that “there were certainly among the He- brews, some things delivered unwritten,” and then refers to S. Barnabas, who speaks of God, “who has put into our hearts wis- dom and the understanding of His secrets,” and says that “it is but for few to compre- hend these things,” as showing a “trace of Gnostic tradition.” “Wherefore instruc- ‘Ibz’d., ch. ix. 8O Hidden Side of Christianity tion, which reveals hidden things, is called illumination, as it is the teacher only who uncovers the lid of the ark.”1 Further re- ferring to S. Paul, he comments on his re- mark to the Romans that he will “come in the fulness of the blessing of Christ,” 2 and says that he thus designates “the spiritual gift and the Gnostic interpretation, while being present he desires to impart to them present as ‘ the fulness of Christ, according to the revelation of the Mystery sealed in the ages of eternity, but now manifested by the prophetic Scriptures.’ 3 . . . But only to a few of them is shown what those things are which are contained in the Mystery. Rightly, then, Plato, in the epistles, treat- ing of God, says: ‘ We must speak in enig- mas; that should the tablet come by any mischance on its leaves either by sea or land, he who reads may remain ignorant.’ ” ‘ After much examination of Greek writers, and an investigation into philosophy, S. Cle- lIbz‘d., bk. V., ch. x. 9Loo. Cit., xv. 29. 3Ibid., xvi. 25, 26; the version quoted differs in words, but not in meaning, from the English Authorised Version. 4Stromata, bk. V., ch. x. 6 81 Esoteric Christianity ment declares that the Gnosis “imparted and revealed by the Son of God, is wisdom. . . . And the Gnosis itself is that which has descended by transmission to a few, having been imparted unwritten by the Apostles.” 1 A very long exposition of the life of the Gnostic, the Initiate, is given, and S. Cle- ment concludes it by saying: “Let the specimen suffice to those who have ears. For it is not required to unfold the mystery, but only to indicate what is sufiicient for those who are partakers in knowledge to bring it to mind.” ’ Regarding Scripture as consisting of alle- gories and symbols, and as hiding the sense in order to stimulate enquiry and to preserve the ignorant from danger,3 S. Clement naturally confined the higher instruction to the learned. “Our Gnostic will be deeply learned,“ he says. “Now the Gnostic must be erudite.” ° Those who had acquired readiness by previous training could master the deeper knowledge, for though “a man lIb2.'d., bk. VI., ch. vii. ’Ibz’d., bk. VII., ch. xiv. 3Ibz'd., bk. VI., ch. xv. ‘Ibz'd., bk. VI., ch. x. 5 I bid., bk. VI., ch. vii. 82 Hidden Side of Christianity can be a believer without learning, so also we assert that it is impossible for a man without learning to comprehend the things which are declared in the faith.”1 “Some who think themselves naturally gifted, do not wish to touch either philosophy or logic; nay more, they do not wish to learn natural science. They demand bare faith alone. . . . So also I call him truly learned who brings everything to bear on the truth—so that, from geometry, and music, and gram- mar, and philosophy itself, culling what is useful, he guards the faith against assault. . . . How necessary is it for him who de- sires to be partaker of the power of God, to treat of intellectual subjects by philoso- phising.”a The Gnostic avails himself of branches of learning as auxiliary preparatory exercises.” 9 So far was S. Clement from thinking that the teaching of Christianity should be measured by the ignorance of the unlearned. “He who is conversant with all kinds of wisdom will be pre-eminently a Gnostic.’H Thus while he welcomed the lIln'd.. bk. 1., ch. vi. ’Ibz'd., ch. ix. 3Ib£d., bk. VI., ch. x. ‘Ibz'd., bk. 1., ch. xiii. 83 Esoteric Christianity ignorant and the sinner, and found in the Gospel what was suited to their needs, he considered that only the learned and the pure were fit candidates for the Mysteries. “The Apostle, in contradistinction to Gnos- tic perfection, calls the common faith the foundation, and sometime 'rm'llc,”ll but on that foundation the edifice of the Gnosis was to be raised, and the food of men was to suc- ceed that of babes. There is nothing of harshness nor of contempt in the distinction he draws, but only a calm and wise recogni- tion of the facts. Even the well-prepared candidate, the learned and trained pupil, could only hope to advance step by step in the profound truths unveiled in the Mysteries. This ap- pears clearly in his comments on the vision of Hermas, in which he also throws out some hints on methods of reading occult works. “Did not the Power also, that ap- peared to Hermas in the Vision, in the form of the Church, give for transcription the book which she wished to be made known to the elect? And this, he says, he trans- lVol. XII. Stromata, bk. V., ch. iv. 84 Hidden Side of Christianity cribed to the letter, without finding how to complete the syllables. And this signified that the Scripture is clear to all, when taken according to base reading; and that this is the faith which occupies the place of the rudiments. Wherefore also the figurative expression is employed, ‘ reading according to the letter,’ while we understand that the gnostic unfolding of Scriptures, when faith had already reached an advanced state, is likened to reading according to the sylla- bles. . . . Now that the Saviour has taught the Apostles, the unwritten rendering of the written (scriptures) has been handed down also to us, inscribed by the power of God on hearts new, according to the renovation of the book. Thus those of highest repute among the Greeks dedicate the fruit of the pomegranate to Hermes, who they say is speech, on account of its interpretation. For speech conceals much. . . . That it is there- fore not only to those who read simply that the acquisition of the truth is so diflicult, but that not even to those whose preroga- tive the knowledge of the truth is, is the contemplation of it vouchsafed all at once, 85 Esoteric Christianity the history of Moses teaches; until accus- tomed to gaze, as the Hebrews on the glory of Moses, and the prophets of Israel on the visions of angels, so we also become able to look the splendours of truth in the face.” 1 Yet more references might be given, but these should suffice to establish the fact that S. Clement knew of, had been initiated into, and wrote for the benefit of those who had also been initiated into, the Mysteries in the Church. The next witness is his pupil Origen, that most shining light of learning, courage, sanctity, devotion, meekness, and zeal, whose works remain as mines of gold wherein the student may dig for the treas- ures of wisdom. In his famous controversy with Celsus at- tacks were made on Christianity which drew out a defence of the Christian position in which frequent references were made to the secret teachings.” lIbid., bk. VI., ch. xv. ’Book I. of Against Celsus is found in V01. X. of the Ante-Nicene Library. The remaining books are in V0]. XXIII. 86 Hidden Side of Christianity Celsus had alleged, as a matter of attack, that Christianity was a secret system, and Origen traverses this by saying that while certain doctrines were secret, many others were public, and that this system of ex— oteric and esoteric teachings, adopted in Christianity, was also in general use among philosophers. The reader should note, in the following passage, the distinction drawn between the resurrection of Jesus, regarded in a historical light, and the “mystery of the resurrection.” “Moreover, since he [Celsus] frequently calls the Christian doctrine a secret system [of belief], we must confute him on this point also, since almost the entire world is better acquainted with what Christians preach than with the favourite opinions of philosophers. For who is ignorant of the statement that Jesus was born of a virgin, and that He was crucified, and that His resurrection is an article of faith among many, and that a general judgment is an- nounced to come, in which the wicked are to be punished according to their deserts, and the righteous to be' duly rewarded? 87 Esoteric Christianity And yet the Mystery of the resurrection, not being understood, is made a subject of ridicule among unbelievers. In these cir- cumstances, to speak of the Christian doc- trine as a secret system, is altogether absurd. But that there should be certain doctrines, not made known to the multitude, which are [revealed] after the exoteric ones have been taught, is not a peculiarity of Christianity alone, but also of philosophic systems, in which certain truths are ex- oteric and others esoteric. Some of the hearers of Pythagoras were content with his ipse dixit; while others were taught in secret those doctrines which were not deemed fit to be communicated to profane and insufiiciently prepared ears. Moreover, all the Mysteries that are celebrated every- where throughout Greece and barbarous countries, although held in secret, have no discredit thrown upon them, so that it is in vain he endeavours to calumniate the secret doctrines of Christianity, seeing that he does not correctly understand its nature.” 1 It is impossible to deny that, in this im- lVol. X. Orz'gen against Oelsus, bk. 1., ch. vii. 88 Hidden Side of Christianity portant passage, Origen distinctly places the Christian Mysteries in the same category as those of the Pagan world, and claims that what is not regarded as a discredit to other religions should not form a subject of attack when found in Christianity. Still writing against Celsus, he declares that the secret teachings of Jesus were pre- served in the Church, and refers specifically to the explanations that He gave to His dis- ciples of His parables, in answering Celsus’ comparison of “the inner Mysteries of the Church of God” with the Egyptian worship of animals. “I have not yet spoken of the observance of all that is written in the Gos- pels, each one of which contains much doc- trine difficult to be understood, not merely by the multitude, but even by certain of the more intelligent, including a very profound explanation of the parables which Jesus de- livered to ‘those without ’ while reserving the exhibition of their full meaning for those who had passed beyond the stage of exoteric teaching, and who came to Him privately in the house. And when he comes to understand it, he will admire the reason 89 Esoteric Christianity why some are said to be ‘Without,’ and others ‘ in the house.’ ” 1 And he refers guardedly to the “moun- tain ” which Jesus ascended, from which he came down again to help “those who were unable to follow Him whither His disciples went.” 1 The allusion is to “the Mountain of Initiation,” a well-known mystical phrase, as Moses also made the Tabernacle after the pattern “showed thee in the mount.”2 Origen refers to it again later, saying that Jesus showed himself to be very different in his real appearance when on the “Mountain,” from what those saw who could not “follow Him on high.” 3 So also, in his commentary on the Gospel of Matthew, Chap. xv., dealing with the episode of the Syro-Phoenician woman, Ori- gen remarks: “And perhaps, also, of the words of Jesus there are some loaves which it is possible to give to the more rational, as to children, only; and others as it were crumbs from the great house and table of the ‘Ibz'd. 9Ex. xxv. 40, xxvi. 30, and compare with Heb. viii. 5, and ix. 23. 3 Orz'gen against Celsus, bk. IV., ch. xvi. 90 Hidden Side of Christianity well-born, which may be used by some souls like dogs.” Celsus complaining that sinners were brought into the Church, Origen answers that the Church had medicine for those that were sick, but also the study and the know- ledge of divine things for those who were in health. Sinners were taught not to sin, and only when it was seen that progress had been made, and men were “purified by the Word,” “then and not before do we invite them to participation in our Mysteries. For we speak wisdom among them that are per- feet.”1 Sinners came to be healed: “For there are in the divinity of the Word some helps towards the cure of those who are sick. . . . Others, again, which to the pure in soul and body exhibit the ‘ revelation of the Mystery, which was kept secret since the world began, but now is made manifest by the Scriptures of the prophets,’ and ‘ by the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,’ which ‘appearing’ is manifested to each one of those who are perfect, and which en- lightens the reason in the true knowledge lIln'd., bk. 111., ch. lix. 91 Esoteric Christianity of things.”1 Such appearances of divine Beings took place, we have seen, in the Pa- gan Mysteries, and those of the Church had equally glorious visitants. “God the Word,” he says, “was sent as a physician to sinners, but as a Teacher of Divine Mys- teries to those who are already pure, and who sin no more.“ “Wisdom will not en- ter into the soul of a base man, nor dwell in a body that is involved in sin”; hence these higher teachings are given only to those who are “athletes in piety and in every virtue.” Christians did not admit the impure to this knowledge, but said: “Whoever has clean hands, and, therefore, lifts up holy hands to God . . . let him come to us . . . Whoever is pure not only from all defile- ment, but from what are regarded as lesser transgressions, let him be boldly initiated in the Mysteries of Jesus, which properly are made known only to the holy and the pure.” Hence also, ere the ceremony of Initiation began, he who acts as Initiator, according to the precepts of Jesus, the Hierophant, made the significant proclamation “to those ‘Ibz'd., ch. lxi. ’Ibz'd., ch. lxii. 92 Hidden Side of Christianity who have been purified in heart: He, whose soul has, for a long time, been conscious of no evil, especially since he yielded himself to the healing of the Word, let such a one hear the doctrines which were spoken in private by Jesus to His genuine disciples.” This was the opening of the “initiating those who were already purified into the sacred Mysteries.” 1 Such only might learn the realities of the unseen worlds, and might enter into the sacred. precincts where, as of old, angels were the teachers, and where knowledge was given by sight and not only by words. It is impossible not to be struck with the different tone of these Christians from that of their modern successors. With them perfect purity of life, the prac- tice of virtue, the fulfilling of the divine Law in every detail of outer conduct, the perfection of righteousness, were—as with the Pagans—only the beginning of the way instead of the end. Nowadays religion is considered to have gloriously accomplished its object when it has made the Saint; then, it was to the Saints that it devoted its high- lIln'd., ch. 1x. 93 Esoteric Christianity est energies, and, taking the pure in heart, it led them to the Beatific Vision. The same fact of secret teaching comes out again, when Origen is discussing the arguments of Celsus as to the wisdom of re- taining ancestral customs, based on the be- lief that “the various quarters of the earth were from the beginning allotted to differ- ent superintending Spirits, and were thus distributed among certain governing Pow- ers, and in this way the administration of the world is carried on.” 1 Origen having animadverted on the de- ductions of Celsus, proceeds: “But as we think it likely that some of those who are accustomed to deeper investigation will fall in with this treatise, let us venture to lay down some considerations of a profounder kind, conveying a mystical and secret view respecting the original distribution of the various quarters of the earth among differ- ent superintending Spirits.” ’ He says that Celsus has misunderstood the deeper reasons relating to the arrangement of terrestrial ‘ Vol. XXIII. Origen against Calms, bk. V., ch. xxv. ’Ibz'd., ch. xxviii. 94 Hidden Side of Christianity affairs, some of which are even touched upon in Grecian history. Then he quotes Deut. xxxii. 8—9: “When the Most High divided the nations, when he dispersed the sons of Adam, He set the bounds of the peo- ple according to the number of the Angels of God; and the Lord’s portion was his peo- ple Jacob, and Israel the cord of his inheri- tance.” This is the wording of the Septua- gint, not that of the English authorised version, but it is very suggestive of the title the “Lord” being regarded as that of the Ruling Angel of the Jews only, and not of the “Most High,” ale. God. This view has disappeared, from ignorance, and hence the impropriety of many of the state- ments refer1ing to the “Lord,” when they are transferred to the “Most High,” 6. g. Judges 1.19. Origen then relates the history of the Tower of Babel, and continues: “But on these subjects much, and that of a mystical kind, might be said; in keeping with which is the following: ‘ It is good to keep close the secret of a king,’ Tobit xii. 7, in order that the doctrine of the entrance of souls 95 ~ Esoteric Christianity into bodies (not, however, that of the trans- migration from one body into another) may not be thrown before the common under- standing, nor what is holy given to the dogs, nor pearls be cast before swine. For such a procedure would be impious, being equiva- lent to a betrayal of the mysterious decla- rations of God’s wisdom ..... It is suffi- cient, however, to represent in the style of a historic narrative what is intended to con- vey a. secret meaning in the garb of history, that those who have the capacity may work out for themselves all that relates to the subject.” 1 He then expounds more fully the Tower of Babel story, and writes: “ Now, in the next place, if any one has the capacity let him understand that in what assumes the form of history, and which con- tains some things that are literally true, while yet it conveys a deeper mean- ing . . . .”’ After endeavouring to show that the “Lord” was more powerful than the other superintending Spirits of the difierent quar- ters of the earth, and that he sent his people lIbz'd., ch. xxix. 9Iln'd., ch. xxxi. 96 Hidden Side of Christianity forth to be punished by living under the do— minion of the other powers, and afterwards reclaimed them with all of the less favoured nations who could be drawn in, Origen con- cludes by saying: “As we have previously observed, these remarks are to be under- stood as being made by us with a concealed meaning, by way of pointing out the mis- takes of those who assert . . . .’“ as did Celsus. After remarking that “the object of Christianity is that we should become wise,”a Origen proceeds: “If you come to the books written after the time of Jesus, you will find that those multitudes of be- lievers who hear the parables are, as it were, ‘without,’ and worthy only of ex- oteric doctrines, while the disciples learn in private the explanation of the parables. For, privately, to His own disciples did J e- sus open up all things, esteeming above the multitudes those who desired to know His wisdom. And He promises to those who believe on Him to send them wise men and scribes. . . . And Paul also in the catalogue ' lII)?Id., ch. xxxii. 2Il)z'd., ch. xlv. 7 97 Esoteric Christianity of ‘ Charismata’ bestowed by God, placed first ‘ the Word of Wisdom,’ and second, as being inferior to it, ‘the word of know- ledge,’ but third, and lower down, ‘ faith.’ And because he regarded ‘the Word’ as higher than miraculous powers, be for that reason places ‘ workings of miracles’ and ‘ gifts of healings’ in a lower place than gifts of the Word.” 1 The Gospel truly helped the ignorant, “but it is no hindrance to the knowledge of God, but an assistance, to have been edu- cated, and to have studied the best opinions, and to be Wise.” ’ As for the unintelligent, “I endeavour to improve such also to the best of my ability, although I would not desire to build up the Christian community out of such materials. For I seek in pref- erence those who are more clever and acute, because they are able to comprehend the meaning of the hard sayings.”3 Here we have plainly stated the ancient Christian idea, entirely at one with the considerations submitted in Chapter I. of this book. ‘Ibid., ch. xlvi. 9Ibid., chs. xlvii—liv. 3Iln'd., ch. lxxiv. 98 Hidden Side of Christianity There is room for the ignorant in Christian- ity, but it is not intended only for them, and has deep teachings for the “clever and acutefl’ It is for these that he takes much pains to show that the Jewish and Christian Scrip- tures have hidden meanings, veiled under stories the outer meaning of Which repels them as absurd, alluding to the serpent and the tree of life, and “the other statements which follow, which might of themselves lead a candid reader to see that all these things had, not inappropriately, an allegor- ical meaning.” 1 Many chapters are devoted to these allegorical and mystical meanings, hidden beneath the words of the Old and New Testaments, and he alleges that Moses, like the Egyptians, gave histories with con- cealed meanings.2 “He who deals candidly with histories ”—this is Origen’s general canon of interpretation—“and would wish to keep himself also from being imposed on by them, will exercise his judgment as to what statements he will give his assent to, lIbzid., bk. IV., ch. xxxix. 9 Vol. X. Origen agaimt Oelsus, bk. 1., ch. xvii. and others. 99 Esoteric Christianity and what he will accept figuratively, seek- ing to discover the meaning of the authors of such inventions, and from what state- ments he will withhold his beliefs, as having been written for the gratification of certain individuals. And we have said this by way of anticipation respecting the whole history related in the Gospels concerning Jesus.” 1 A great part of his Fourth Book is taken up with illustrations of the mystical explana- tions of the Scripture stories, and anyone who wishes to pursue the subject can read through it. In the De Principz’z's, Origen gives it as the received teaching of the Church “that the Scriptures were written by the Spirit of God, and have a meaning, not only such as is apparent at first sight, but also an- other, which escapes the notice of most. For those [words] which are written are the forms of certain Mysteries, and the images of divine things. Respecting which there is one opinion throughout the whole Church, that the whole law is indeed spirit- ual; but that the spiritual meaning which 1 I bid, ch. xlii. 100 Hidden Side of Christianity the law conveys is not known to all, but to those only on whom the grace of the Holy Spirit is bestowed in the word of wisdom and knowledge.”1 Those who remember what has already been quoted will see in the “Word of wisdom” and “the word of know- ledge ” the two typical mystical instructions, the spiritual and the intellectual. In the Fourth Book of De Princtpiz's, Origen explains at length his views on the interpretation of Scripture. It has a “body,” which is the “common and histori- cal sense”; a “soul,” a figurative meaning to be discovered by the exercise of the intel- lect; and a “spirit,” an inner and divine sense, to be known only by those who have “the mind of‘ Christ.” He considers that incongruous and impossible things are intro- duced into the history to arouse an intelli- gent reader, and compel him to search for a deeper explanation, while simple people would read on without appreciating the dif- ficulties.’ Cardinal Newman, in his Artans of the Fourth Century, has some interesting re- lVol. X. De Principz'z’s, Preface, p. 8. QIbz'd., ch. i. 101 Esoteric Christianity marks on the Disciplina Arcam’, but, with the deeply-rooted ingrained scepticism of the nineteenth century, he cannot believe to the full in the “riches of the glory of the Mys- tery,” or probably never for a moment conceived the possibility of the existence of such splendid realities. Yet he was a be- liever in Jesus, and the words of the promise of Jesus were clear and definite: “I will not leave you comfortless; I will come to you. Yet a little while, and the world seeth me no more; but ye see me: because I live, ye shall live also. At that day ye shall know that I am in my Father, and ye in me, and I in you.”1 The promise was amply re- deemed, for He came to them and taught them in His Mysteries; therein they saw Him, though the world saw Him no more, and they knew the Christ as in them, and their life as Christ’s. Cardinal Newman recognises a secret tra- dition, handed down from the Apostles, but he considers that it consisted of Christian doctrines, later divulged, forgetting that those who were told that they were not yet 1S. John xiv. 18-20. 102 Hidden Side of Christianity fit to receive it were not heathen, nor even catechumens under instruction, but full communicating members of the Christian Church. Thus he states that this secret tradition was later “authoritatively divul- ged and perpetuated in the form of sym- bols,” and was embodied “in the creeds of the early Councils.”1 But as the doctrines in the creeds are to be found clearly stated in the Gospels and Epistles, this position is wholly untenable, all these having been already divulged to the world at large; and in all of them the members of the Church were certainly thoroughly instructed. The repeated statements as to secrecy become meaningless if thus explained. The Cardi- nal, however, says that whatever “has not been thus authenticated, whether it was prophetical information or comment on the past dispensations, is, from the circum- stances of the case, lost to the Church.”2 That is very probably, in fact certainly, true, so far as the Church is concerned, but it is none the less recoverable. lLoo. cz’t., ch. i., sec. 111., p. 55. 9Iba’d., ch. 1., sec. 111.. pp. 55, 56. 103 Esoteric Christianity Commenting on Irenaeus, who in his work Against Heresz'es lays much stress on the existence of an Apostolic Tradition in the Church, the Cardinal writes: “He then proceeds to speak of the clearness and co- gency of the traditions preserved in the Church, as containing that true wisdom of the perfect, of which S. Paul speaks, and to which the Gnostics pretended. And, in- deed, without formal proofs of the existence and the authority in primitive times of an Apostolic Tradition, it is plain that there must have been such a tradition, granting that the Apostles conversed, and their friends had memories, like other men. It is quite inconceivable that they should not have been led to arrange the series of re- vealed doctrines more systematically than they record them in Scripture, as soon as their converts became exposed to the attacks and misrepresentations of heretics; unless they were forbidden to do so, a supposition which cannot be maintained. Their state- ments thus occasioned would be preserved as a matter of course; together with those other secret but less important truths, to 104 Hidden Side of Christianity which S. Paul seems to allude, and which the early writers more or less acknowledge, whether concerning the types of the Jewish Church, or the prospective fortunes of the Christian. And such recollections of apos- tolical teaching would evidently be binding on the faith of those who were instructed in them; unless it can be supposed that, though coming from inspired teachers, they were not of divine origin.” 1 In a part of the section dealing with the allegorising method, he writes in reference to the sac- rifice of Isaac, &c., as “typical of the New Testament revelation”: “In corroboration of this remark, let it be observed, that there seems to have been 9 in the Church a tradi- tionary explanation of these historical types, derived from the Apostles, but kept among the secret doctrines, as being dangerous to the majority of hearers; and certainly S. Paul, in the Epistle to the Hebrews, affords us an instance of such a tradition, both as lIbz’d., pp. 54, 55. 9 “ Seems to have been ” is a somewhat weak expression, after what is said by Clement and Origen, of which some specimens are given in the text. 105 Esoteric Christianity existing and as secret (even though it be shown to be of Jewish origin), when, first checking himself and questioning his breth- ren’s faith, he communicates, not without hesitation, the evangelical scope of the ac- count of Melchisedec, as introduced into the book of Genesis.” 1 The social and political convulsions that accompanied its dying now began to torture the vast frame of the Roman Empire, and even the Christians were caught up in the whirlpool of selfish warring interests. We still find scattered references to special knowledge imparted to the leaders and teachers of the Church, knowledge of the heavenly hierarchies, instructions given by angels, and so on. But the lack of suit- able pupils caused the Mysteries to be with- drawn as an institution publicly known to exist, and teaching was given more and more secretly to those rarer and rarer souls, who by learning, purity, and devotion showed themselves capable of receiving it. N 0 longer were schools to be found wherein the preliminary teachings were given, and ‘Iln'd., p. 62. 106 Hidden Side of Christianity with the disappearance of these the “door was shut.” Two streams may nevertheless be tracked through Christendom, streams which had as their source the vanished Mysteries. One was the stream of mystic learning, flowing from the Wisdom, the Gnosis, imparted in the Mysteries; the other was the stream of mystic contemplation, equally part of the Gnosis, leading to the exstasy, to spiritual vision. This latter, however, divorced from knowledge, rarely attained the true exstasis, and tended either to run riot in the lower regions of the invisible worlds, or to lose itself amid a variegated crowd of subtle superphysical forms, visible as objective ap- pearances to the inner vision—prematurely forced by fastings, vigils, and strained attention—but mostly born of the thoughts and emotions of the seer. Even when the forms observed were not externalised thoughts, they were seen through a distort- ing atmosphere of preconceived ideas and beliefs, and were thus rendered largely un- _ reliable. None the less, some of the visions were verily of heavenly things, and Jesus 107 Esoteric Christianity truly appeared from time to time to His devoted lovers, and angels would sometimes brighten with their presence the cell of monk and nun, the solitude of rapt devotee and patient seeker after God. To deny the possibility of such experiences would be to strike at the very root of that “which has been most surely believed” in all religions, and is known to all Occultists—the inter- communication between Spirits veiled in flesh and those clad in subtler vestures, the touching of mind with mind across the bar- riers of matter, the unfolding of the Divinity in man, the sure knowledge of a life beyond the gates of death. Glancing down the centuries we find no time in which Christendom was left wholly devoid of mysteries. “It was probably about the end of the 5th century, just as ancient philosophy was dying out in the Schools of Athens, that the speculative philosophy of neo-Platonism made a definite lodgment in Christian thought through the literary forgeries of the Pseudo-Dionysius. The doctrines of Christianity were by that time so firmly established that the Church 108 Hidden Side of Christianity could look upon a symbolical or mystical in- terpretation of them without anxiety. The author of the Theologica Mystica and the other works ascribed to the Areopagite pro- ceeds, therefore, to develop the doctrines of Proclus with very little modification into a system of esoteric Christianity. God is the nameless and supra-essential One, elevated above goodness itself. Hence ‘ negative the- ology,’ which ascends from the creature to God by dropping one after another every de- terminate predicate, leads us nearest to the truth. The return to God is the consumma- 'tion of all things and the goal indicated by Christian teaching. The same doctrines were preached with more of churchly fer- vour by Maximus the Confessor (580—622). Maximus represents almost the last specula- tive activity of the Greek Church, but the influence of the Pseudo-Dionysian writing was transmitted to the West in the ninth century by Erigena, in whose speculative spirit both the scholasticism and the mysti- cism of the Middle Ages have their rise. Erigena translated Dionysius into Latin along with the commentaries of Max— 109 Esoteric Christianity imus, and his system is essentially based upon theirs. The negative theology is adopted, and God is stated to be predicateless Being, above all categories, and therefore not im- properly called Nothing [query, No-Thing]. Out of this Nothing or incomprehensible essence the world of ideas or primordial causes is eternally created. This is the Word or Son of God, in whom all things exist, so far as they have substantial exist- ence. All existence is a theophany, and as God is the beginning of all things, so also is He the end. Erigena teaches the restitution of all things under the form of the Dionysian adunatio or deificatz'o. These are the per- manent outlines of what may be called the philosophy of mysticism in Christian times, and it is remarkable with how little varia- tion they are repeated from age to age.” 1 In the eleventh century Bernard of Clair- vaux (A.D. 1091—1153) and Hugo of S. Victor carry on the mystic tradition, with Richard of S. Victor in the following century, and S. Bonaventura the Seraphic Doctor, and the great S. Thomas Aquinas 1Article on “ Mysticism. ”—Encyc. Britan. 110 Hidden Side of Christianity (A.D. 1227—1274) in the thirteenth. Thomas Aquinas dominates the Europe of the Middle Ages, by his force of character no less than by his learning and piety. He asserts “Revelation” as one source of knowledge, Scripture and tradition being the two chann- els in which it runs, and the influence, seen in his writings, of the Pseudo-Dionysius links him to the Neo-Platonists. The second source is Reason, and here the channels are the Platonic philosophy and the methods of Aristotle—the latter an alliance that did Christianity no good, for Aristotle became an obstacle to the advance of the higher thought, as was made manifest in the strug- gles of Giordano Bruno, the Pythagorean. Thomas Aquinas was canonised in A.D. 1323, and the great Dominican remains as a type of the union of theology and philoso- phy—the aim of his life. These belong to the great Church of western Europe, vindi- cating her claim to be regarded as the trans- mitter of the holy torch of mystic learning. Around her there also sprang up many sects, deemed heretical, yet containing true traditions of the sacred secret learning, the 111 Esoteric Christianity Cathari and many others, persecuted by a Church jealous of her authority, and fear- in g lest the holy pearls should pass into pro- fane custody. In this century also S. Eliz- abeth of Hungary shines out with sweetness and purity, while Eckhart (A.D. 1260—1329) proves himself a worthy inheritor of the Alexandrian Schools. Eckhart taught that “The Godhead is the absolute Essence (We- sen), unknowable not only by man but also by Itself; It is darkness and absolute inde- terminateness, Nicht in contrast to Icht, or definite and knowable existence. Yet It is the potentiality of all things, and Its nature is, in a triadic process, to come to conscious- ness of Itself as the triune God. Creation is not a temporal act, but an eternal neces- sity, of the divine nature. I am as neces- sary to God, Eckhart is fond of saying, as God is necessary to me. In my knowledge and love God knows and loves Himself.” ‘ Eckhart is followed, in the fourteenth century, by John Tauler, and Nicolas of Basel, “the Friend of God in the Oberland.” From these sprang up the Society of the lArticle “ Mysticism.” Encyclopwdz'a Britannica. 112 Hidden Side of Christianity Friends of God, true mystics and followers of the old tradition. Mead remarks that Thomas Aquinas, Tauler, and Eckhart fol- lowed the Pseudo Dionysius, who followed Plotinus, Iamblichus. and Proclus, who in turn followed Plato and Pythagoras.1 So linked together are the followers of the Wisdom in all ages. It was probably a “Friend " who was the author of Die Deut- sche Theologie, a book of mystical devotion. which had the curious fortune of being approved by Staupitz, the Vicar-General of the Augustinian Order, who recommended it to Luther, and by Luther himself, who published it A.D. 1516, as a book which should rank immediately after the Bible and the writings of S. Augustine of Hippo. Another “Friend” was Ruysbroeck, to whose influence with Groot was due the founding of the Brethren of the Common Lot or Common Life—a Society that must remain ever memorable, as it numbered among its members that prince of mystics, Thomas a Kempis (Ann. 1380—1471), the au- thor of the immortal Imitation of Christ. ‘ Orpheus, pp. 53, 5-1. 8 113 Esoteric Christianity In the two following centuries the more purely intellectual side of mysticism comes out more strongly than the exstatic—so dominant in these societies of the fourteenth —and we have Cardinal Nicolas of Cusa, with Giordano Bruno, the martyred knight- errant of philosophy, and Paracelsus, the much slandered scientist, who drew his knowledge directly from the original eastern fountain, instead of through Greek channels. The sixteenth century saw the birth of Jacob B6__me (AND 1575—1624), the “in- $515651” cobbler,” an Initiate in obscuration truly, sorely persecuted by unenlightened men; and then too came S. Teresa, the much-oppressed and suffering Spanish mys- tic; and S. John of the Cross, a burning flame of intense devotion; and S. Francois de Sales. Wise was Rome in canonising these, wiser than the Reformation that persecuted Bohme, but the spirit of the Reformation was ever intensely anti-mys- tical, and wherever its breath has passed the fair flowers of mysticism have withered as under the sirocco. Rome, however, who, though she canon- 114 Hidden Side of Christianity Friends of God, true mystics and followers of the old tradition. Mead remarks that Thomas Aquinas, Tauler, and Eckhart fol- lowed the Pseudo Dionysius, who followed Plotinus, Iamblichus, and Proclus, who in turn followed Plato and Pythagoras.1 So linked together are the followers of the Wisdom in all ages. It was probably a “Friend” who was the author of Die Deut- sche Theologie, a book of mystical devotion, which had the curious fortune of being approved by Staupitz, the Vicar-General of the Augustinian Order, who recommended it to Luther, and by Luther himself, who published it A.D. 1516, as a book which should rank immediately after the Bible and the writings of S. Augustine of Hippo. Another “Friend” was Ruysbroeck, to whose influence with Groot was due the founding of the Brethren of the Common Lot or Common Life—a Society that must remain ever memorable, as it numbered among its members that prince of mystics, Thomas a Kempis (A.D. 1380—1471), the au- thor of the immortal Imitation of Christ. 1 Orpheus, pp. 53, 54. 8 113 Esoteric Christianity the “Comte de 8. Germain,” the mysterious figure that appears and disappears through the gloom, lit by lurid flashes, of the closing eighteenth century. Mystics too were some . of the Quakers, the much-persecuted sect of Friends, seeking the illumination of the In- ner Light, and listening ever for the Inner Voice. And many another mystic was there, “of whom the world was not worthy,” like the wholly delightful and wise Mother Juliana of Norwich, of the fourteenth century, jewels of Christendom, too little known, but justifying Christianity to the world. Yet, as we salute reverently these Chil- dren of the Light, scattered over the cen- turies, we are forced to recognise in them the absence of that union of acute intellect and high devotion which were welded to- gether by the training of the Mysteries, and while we marvel that they soared so high, we cannot but wish that their rare gifts had been developed under that magnificent dis- cz'plina arcam'. Alphonse Louis Constant, better known under his pseudonym, Eliphas Lévi, has put 116 Hidden Side of Christianity rather well the loss of the Mysteries, and the need for their re-institution. “A great misfortune befell Christianity. The be- trayal of the Mysteries by the false Gnostics —for the Gnostics, that is, those who know, were the Initiates of primitive Christianity ——caused the Gnosis to be rejected, and alienated the Church from the supreme truths of the Kabbala, which contain all the secrets of transcendental theology. . . . Let the most absolute science, let the high- est reason, become once more the patrimony of the leaders of the people; let the sacer- dotal art and the royal art take the double sceptre of antique initiations, and the social world will once more issue from its chaos. Burn the holy images no longer; demolish the temples no more; temples and images are necessary for men; but drive the hire- lings from the house of prayer; let the blind be no longer leaders of the blind, reconstruct the hierarchy of intelligence and holiness, and recognise only those who know as the teachers of those who believe.” 1 ' The Mystm‘ies of Magic. Trans. by A. E. Waite, pp. 58 and 60. 117 Esoteric Christianity Will the Churches of to-day again take up the mystic teaching, the Lesser Mysteries, and so prepare their children for the re- establishment of the Greater Mysteries, again drawing down the Angels as Teachers, and having as Hierophant the Divine Master, Jesus? On the answer to that question de- pends the future of Christianity. 118 CHAPTER IV THE HISTORICAL CHRIST WE have already spoken, in the first chap- ter, on the identities existing in all the relig- ions of the world, and we have seen that out of a study of these identities in beliefs, sym- bolisms, rites, ceremonies, histories, and com- memorative festivals, has arisen a modern school which relates the whole of these to a common source in human ignorance, and in a primitive explanation of natural phenomena. From these identities have been drawn weapons for the stabbing of each religion in turn, and the most effective attacks on Christianity and on the historical existence of its Founder have been armed from this source. On entering now on the study of the life of the Christ, of the rites of Christianity, its sacraments, its doctrines, it would be fatal to ignore the facts marshalled by Comparative Mythologists. 119 Esoteric Christianity Rightly understood, they may be made serv- iceable instead of mischievous. We have seen that the Apostles and their successors dealt very freely with the Old Testament as having an allegorical and mystic sense far more important than the historical, though by no means negating it, and that they did not scruple to teach the instructed believer that some of the stories that were apparent- ly historical were really purely allegorical. Nowhere, perhaps, is it more necessary to understand this than when we are studying the story of Jesus, surnamed the Christ, for when we do not disentangle the intertwisted threads, and see where symbols have been taken as events, allegories as histories, we lose most of the instructiveness of the nar- rative and much of its rarest beauty. We cannot too much insist on the fact that Christianity gains, it does not lose, when knowledge is added to faith and virtue, ac- cording to the apostolic injunction.‘ Men fear that Christianity will be weakened when reason studies it, and that it is “dan- gerous ” to admit that events thought to be 1 II. S. Peter i. 5. 120 The Historical Christ historical have the deeper significance of the mythical or mystical meaning. It is, on the contrary, strengthened, and the student finds, with joy, that the pearl of great price shines with a purer, clearer lustre when the coating of ignorance is removed and its many colours are seen. There are two schools of thought at the present time, bitterly opposed to each other, who dispute over the story of the great Hebrew Teacher. According to one school there is nothing at all in the accounts of His life save myths and legends—myths and legends that were given as explanations of certain natural phenomena, survivals of a pictorial way of teaching certain facts of nature, of impressing on the minds of the uneducated certain grand classifications of natural events that were important in them- selves, and that lent themselves to moral instruction. Those who endorse this view form a well-defined school to which belong many men of high education and strong intelligence, and round them gather crowds of the less instructed, who emphasise with crude vehemence the more destructive ele- 121 Esoteric Christianity ments in their pronouncements. This school is opposed by that of the believers in ortho- dox Christianity, who declare that the whole story of Jesus is history, unadulterated by legend or myth. They maintain that this history is nothing more than the history of the life of a man born some nineteen cen- turies ago in Palestine, who passed through all the experiences set down in the Gospels, and they deny that the story has any signifi- cance beyond that of a divine and human life. These two schools stand in direct an- tagonism, one asserting that everything is legend, the other declaring that everything is history. Between them lie many phases of opinion generally labelled“ freethinking,” which regard the life-story as partly legend- ary and partly historical, but offer no defin- ite and rational method of interpretation, no adequate explanation of the complex whole. And we also find, within the limits of the Christian Church, a large and ever-increas- ing number of faithful and devout Chris- tians of refined intelligence, men and women who are earnest in their faith and religious in their aspirations, but who see in the Gos~ 122 The Historical Christ pel story more than the history of a single divine Man. They allege—defending their position from the received Scriptures—that the story of the Christ has a deeper and more significant meaning than lies on the surface; while they maintain the historical character of Jesus, they at the same time declare that THE CHRIST is more than the man Jesus, and has a mystical meaning. In support of this contention they point to such phrases as that used by S. Paul: “My little children, of whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you;”1 here S. Paul obviously cannot refer to a historical Jesus, but to some forthputting from the human soul which is to him the shaping of Christ therein. Again the same teacher declares that though he had known Christ after the flesh yet from hence- forth he would know him thus no more;’ obviously implying that while he recognised the Christ of the flesh—Jesus—there was a higher view to which he had attained which threw into the shade the historical Christ. This is the view which many are seeking in lGal. iv. 19. ’11. Cor. v. 16. 123 Esoteric Christianity our own days, and—faced by the facts of Comparative Religion, puzzled by the con- tradictions of the Gospels, confused by prob- lems they cannot solve so long as they are tied down to the mere surface meanings of their Scripture—they cry despairingly that the letter killeth while the spirit giveth life, and seek to trace some deep and wide signifi- cance in a story which is as old as the re- ligions of the world, and has always served as the very centre and life of every religion in which it has reappeared. These strug- gling thinkers, too unrelated and indefinite to be spoken of as forming a school, seem to stretch out a hand on one side to those who think that all is legend, asking them to ac- cept a historical basis; on the other side they say to their fellow Christians that there is a growing danger lest, in clinging to a literal and unique meaning, which cannot be de- fended before the increasing knowledge of the day, the spiritual meaning should be entirely lost. There is a danger of losing “the story of the Christ,” with that thought of the Christ which has been the support and inspiration of millions of noble lives in 124 The Historical Christ East and West, though the Christ be called by other names and worshipped under other forms; a. danger lest the pearl of great price should escape from our hold, and man be left the poorer for evermore. What is needed, in order that this danger may be averted, is to disentangle the differ- ent threads in the story of the Christ, and to lay them side by side—the thread of history, the thread of legend, the thread of mysti- cism. These have been intertwined into a single strand, to the great loss of the thoughtful, and in distentangling them we shall find that the story becomes more, not less, valuable as knowledge is added to it, and that here, as in all that is basically of the truth, the brighter the light thrown upon it the greater the beauty that is re- vealed. We will study first the historical Christ; secondly, the mythic Christ; thirdly, the mystic Christ. And we shall find that ele- ‘ ments drawn from all these make up the Jesus Christ of the Churches. They all en- ter into the composition of the grandiose and pathetic Figure which dominates the 125 Esoteric Christianity thoughts and the emotions of Christendom, the Man of Sorrows, the Saviour, the Lover and Lord of Men. THE HISTORICAL CHRIST OR JESUS THE HEALER AND TEACHER THE thread of the life-story of Jesus is one which may be disentangled from those with which it is intertwined without any great difficulty. We may fairly here aid our study by reference to those records of the past which experts can reverify for them- selves, and from which certain details re- garding the Hebrew Teacher have been given to the world by H. P. Blavatsky and by others who are experts in occult investi- gation. N ow in the minds of many there is apt to arise a challenge when this word “expert” is used in connection with occultism. Yet it only means a person who by special study, by special training, has accumulated a special kind of knowledge, and has devel- oped powers that enable him to give an opinion founded on his own individual knowledge of the subject with which he is 126 The Historical Christ dealing. Just as we speak of Huxley as an expert in biology, as we speak of a Senior Wrangler as an expert in mathematics, or of Lyell as an expert in geology, so we may fairly call a man an expert in occultism who has first mastered intellectually certain fundamental theories of the constitution of man and the universe, and secondly has de- veloped within himself the powers that are latent in everyone—and are capable of being developed by those who give themselves to appropriate studies—capacities which enable him to examine for himself the more obscure processes of nature. As a man may be born with a mathematical faculty, and by train- ing that faculty year after year may im- mensely increase his mathematical capacity, so may a man be born with certain faculties within him, faculties belonging to the Soul, which he can develop by training and by discipline. When, having developed those faculties, he applies them to the study of the invisible world, such a man becomes an expert in Occult Science, and such a man can at his will reverify the records to which I have referred. Such reverification is as 127 Esoteric Christianity much out of the reach of the ordinary per- son as a mathematical book written in the symbols of the higher mathematics is out of the reach of those who are untrained in mathematical science. There is nothing exclusive in the knowledge save as every science is exclusive; those who are born with a faculty, and train the faculty, can master its appropriate science, while those who start life without any faculty, or those who do not develop it if they have it, must be content to remain in ignorance. These are the rules everywhere of the obtaining of knowledge, in Occultism as in every other science. The occult records partly endorse the story told in the Gospels, and partly do not endorse it; they show us the life, and thus enable us to disentangle it from the myths which are intertwined therewith. The child whose Jewish name has been turned into that of Jesus was born in Pales- tine, B.C. 105, during the consulate of Pub- lius Rutilius Rufus and Gnaeus Mallius Maximus. His parents were well-born though poor, and he was educated in a 128 The Historical Christ knowledge of the Hebrew Scriptures. His fervent devotion and a gravity beyond his years led his parents to dedicate him to the religious and ascetic life, and soon after a visit to Jerusalem, in which the extraordi- nary intelligence and eagerness for know- ledge of the youth were shown in his seeking of the doctors in the Temple, he was sent to be trained in an Essene community in the southern J udaean desert. When he had reached the age of nineteen he went on to the Essene monastery near Mount Serbal, a monastery which was much visited by learn- ed men travelling from Persia and India to Egypt, and where a magnificent library of occult works—many of them Indian of the Trans-Himalayan regions—had been established. From this seat of mystic learn- ing he proceeded later to Egypt. He had been fully instructed in the secret teachings which were the real fount of life among the Essenes, and was initiated in Egypt as a dis— ciple of that one sublime Lodge from which every great religion'h’a-s it's'To'under. For Egypt has remained one of the world- centres of the true Mysteries, whereof all 9 129 Esoteric Christianity semi-public Mysteries are the faint and far- ofi‘ reflections. The Mysteries spoken of in history as Egyptian were the shadows of the true things “in the Mount,” and there the young Hebrew received the solemn con- secration which prepared him for the Royal Priesthood he was later to attain. So super- humanly pure and so full of devotion was he, that in his gracious manhood he stood out pre-eminently from the severe and some- what fanatical ascetics among whom he had been trained, shedding on the stern Jews around him the fragrance of a gentle and tender wisdom, as a rose-tree strangely planted in a desert would shed its sweetness on the barrenness around. The fair and stately grace of his white purity was round him as a radiant moonlit halo, and his words, though few, were ever sweet and loving, winning even the most harsh to a temporary gentleness, and the most rigid to a passing softness. Thus he lived through nine-and-twenty years of mortal life, grow- ing from grace to grace. This superhuman purity and devotion fitted the man Jesus, the disciple, to become 130 The Historical Christ the temple of a 10ftier Power, of a mighty, indwelling Presence. The time had come for one of those Divine manifestations which from age to age are made for the helping of humanity, when a new impulse is needed to quicken the spiritual evolution of mankind, when a new civilisation is about to dawn. The world of the West was then in the womb of time, ready for the birth, and the Teutonic sub-race was to catch the sceptre of empire falling from the failing hands of Rome. Ere it started on its journey a World-Saviour must appear, to stand in blessing beside the cradle of the infant Hercules. A mighty “Son of God ”was to take flesh upon earth, a supreme Teacher, “full of grace and truth ”1— One in whom the Di- vine Wisdom abode in fullest measure, who was verily “the Word” incarnate, Light and Life in outpouring richness, a very Fountain of the Waters of Life. Lord of Compassion and of Wisdom—such was His name—and from His dwelling in the Secret Places He came forth into the world of men. ‘8. John i. 14. 131 Esoteric Christianity For Him was needed an earthly tabern- acle, a human form, the body of a man, and who so fit to yield his body in glad and willing service to One before whom Angels and men bow down in lowliest reverence, as this Hebrew of the Hebrews, this purest and noblest of “the Perfect,” whose spotless body and stainless mind ofifered the best that humanity could bring? The man Jesus yielded himself a willing sacrifice, “offered himself without spot” to the Lord of Love, who took unto Himself that pure form as. tabernacle, and dwelt therein for three years of mortal life. This epoch is marked in the traditions em— bodied in the Gospels as that of the Baptism of Jesus, when the Spirit was seen “de- scending from heaven like a dove, and it abode upon Him,”1 and a celestial voice proclaimed Him as the beloved Son, to whom men should give ear. Truly was He the beloved Son in whom the Father was well-pleased,2 and from that time forward “Jesus began to preach,”3 and was that 1S. John i. 32. 98. Matt. iii. 17. 3Ib2'd., iv. 17.‘ 132 The Historical Christ wondrous mystery, “God manifest in the flesh”’—not unique in that He was God, for: “Is it not written in your law, I said, Ye are Gods? If he called them Gods, unto whom the word of God came, and the script- ure cannot be broken; say ye of Him, whom the Father hath sanctified and sent into the world, Thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the son of God?“ Truly all men are Gods, in respect to the Spirit within them, but not in all is the Godhead manifested, as in that well-beloved Son of the Most High. To that manifested Presence the name of “the Christ” may rightly be given, and it was He who lived and moved in the form of the man Jesus over the hills and plains of Palestine, teaching, healing diseases, and gathering round Him as disciples a few of the more advanced souls. The rare charm of His royal love, outpouring from Him as rays from a sun, drew round Him the suf- fering, the weary, and the oppressed, and the subtly tender magic of His gentle wis- dom purified, ennobled, and sweetened the II. Tim. iii. 16. 9S. John x. 34-36. 133 Esoteric Christianity lives that came into contact with His own. By parable and luminous imagery He taught the uninstructed crowds who pressed around Him, and, using the powers of the free Spirit, He healed many a. disease by word or touch, re-inforcing the magnetic energies belonging to His pure body with the compel- ling force of His inner life. Rejected by His Essene brethren among whom He first laboured—whose arguments against His purposed life of loving labour are summari- sed in the story of the temptation—because he carried to the people the spiritual wisdom that they regarded as their proudest and most secret treasure, and because His all- embracing love drew within its circle the outcast and the degraded—ever loving in the lowest as in the highest the Divine Self ——He saw gathering round Him all too quickly the dark clouds of hatred and sus- picion. The teachers and rulers of His nation soon came to eye Him with jealousy and anger; His spirituality was a constant reproach to their materialism, His power a. constant, though silent, exposure of their weakness. Three years had scarcely passed 134 The Historical Christ since His baptism when the gathering storm outbroke, and the human body of Jesus paid the penalty for enshrining the glorious Presence of a Teacher more than man. The little band of chosen disciples whom He had selected as repositories of His teach- ings were thus deprived of their Master’s physical presence ere they had assimilated His instructions, but they were souls of high and advanced type, ready to learn the Wis- dom, and fit to hand it on to lesser men. Most receptive of all was that “disciple whom Jesus loved,” young, eager, and ferv- id, profoundly devoted to his Master, and sharing His spirit of all-embracing love. He represented, through the century that followed the physical departure of the Christ, the spirit of mystic devotion that sought the exstasis, the vision of and the union with the Divine, while the later great Apostle, S. Paul, represented the wisdom side of the Mysteries. The Master did not forget His promise to come to them after the world had lost sight of Him,1 and for something over fifty years ‘8. John xiv. 18, 19. 135 Esoteric Christianity He visited them in His subtle spiritual body, continuing the teachings He had begun while with them, and training them in a knowledge of occult truths. They lived together, for the most part, in a retired spot on the outskirts of Judaea, attracting no attention among the many apparently similar communities of the time, studying the profound truths He taught them and acquiring “the gifts of the Spirit.” These inner instructions, commenced during His physical life among them and carried on after He had left the body, formed the basis of the “Mysteries of Jesus,” which we have seen in early Church His- tory, and gave the inner life which was the nucleus round which gathered the hetrogen- eous materials which formed ecclesiastical Christianity. In the remarkable fragment called the Pistz's Sophia, we have a document of the mWerest bearing on the hidden teaching, written by the famous Valentinus. In this it is said that during the eleven years immediately after His death Jesus in- structed His disciples so far as “the regions 136 The Historical Christ of the first statutes only, and up to the regions of the first mystery, the mystery within the veil.”1 They had not so far learned the distribution of the angelic orders, of part whereof Ignatius speaks." Then Jesus, being “in the Mount” with His disciples, and having received His mystic Vesture, the knowledge of all the regions and the Words of Power which unlocked them, taught His disciples further, promis- ing: “I will perfect you in every perfection, from the mysteries of the interior to the mysteries of the exterior: I will fill you with the Spirit, so that ye shall be called spirit- ual, perfect in all perfections.”" And He taught them of Sophia, the Wisdom, and of her fall into matter in her attempt to rise unto the Highest, and of her cries to the Light in which she had trusted, and of the sending of Jesus to redeem her from chaos, and of her crowning with His light, and leading forth from bondage. And He told them further of the highest Mystery the inefiable, the simplest and clearest of all, lValentinus. Trans. by G. R. S. Mead. Pistz's Sophia, bk. i., 1. ’Ante, p. 71. 3Ibz'd., 60. 137 Esoteric Christianity though the highest, to be known by him alone who utterly renounced the world; 1 by that knowledge men became Christs, for such “men are myself, and I am these men,” for Christ is that highest Mystery.2 Knowing that, men are “transformed into pure light and are brought into the light.” 3 And He performed for them the great cere- mony of Initiation, the baptism “which leadeth to the region of truth and into the region of light,” and bade them celebrate it for others who were worthy: “But hide ye this mystery, give it not unto every man, but unto him [only] who shall do all things which I have said unto you in my com- mandmen ts. ” ‘ Thereafter, being fully instructed, the apostles went forth to preach, ever aided by their Master. Moreover these same disciples and their earliest colleagues wrote down from memory all the public sayings and parables of the Master that they had heard, and collected with great eagerness any reports they could 1112272., bk. ii., 218. 915271., 230. 8112271., 357. 4112222., 377. 138 The Historical Christ find, writing down these also, and circulat- ing them all among those who gradually at- tached themselves to their small community. Various collections were made, any member writing down what he himself remembered, and adding selections from the accounts of others. The inner teachings, given by the Christ to His chosen ones, were not written down, but were taught orally to those deemed worthy to receive them, to students who formed small communities for leading a retired life, and remained in touch with the central body. The historical Christ, then, is a glorious Being belonging to the great spiritual hier- archy that guides the spiritual evolution of humanity, who used for some three years the human body of the disciple Jesus; who spent the last of these three years in public teaching throughout J udaea and Samaria; who was a healer of diseases and performed other remarkable occult works; who gath- ered round Him a small band of disciples whom He instructed in the deeper truths of the spiritual life; who drew men to Him by the singular love and tenderness and the 139 Esoteric Christianity rich wisdom that breathed from His Per- son; and who was finally put to death for blasphemy, for teaching the inherent Divin- ity of Himself and of all men. He came to give a new impulse of spiritual life to the world; to re-issue the inner teachings affect- ing spiritual life; to mark out again the narrow ancient way; to proclaim the exist- ence of the “Kingdom of Heaven,” of the Initiation which admits to that knowledge of God which is eternal life; and to admit a few to that Kingdom who should be able to teach others. Round this glorious Figure gathered the myths which united Him to the long array of His predecessors, the myths telling in allegory the story of all such lives, as they symbolise the work of the Logos in the Kosmos and the higher evolu- . tion of the individual human soul. But it must not be supposed that the work of the Christ for His followers was over after He had established the Mysteries, or was confined to rare appearances therein. That Mighty One who had used the body of Jesus as His vehicle, and whose guardian care ex- tends over the whole spiritual evolution of 140 The Historical Christ the fifth race of humanity, gave into the strong hands of the holy disciple who had surrendered to Him his body the care of the infant Church. Perfecting his human evo- lution, Jesus became one of the Masters of Wisdom, and took Christianity under His special charge, ever seeking to guide it to the right lines, to protect, to guard and nourish it. He was the Hierophant in the Christian Mysteries, the direct Teacher of the Initiates. His the inspiration that kept alight the Gnosis in the Church, until the superincumbent mass of ignorance became so great that even His breath could not fan the flame sufficiently to prevent its extin- guishment. His the patient labour which strengthened soul after soul to endure through the darkness, and cherish within itself the spark of mystic longing, the thirst to find the Hidden God. His the steady inpouring of truth into every brain ready to receive it, so that hand stretched out to hand across the centuries and passed on the torch of knowledge, which thus was never extinguished. His the Form which stood beside the rack and in the flames of the burn- 141 Esoteric Christianity ing pile, cheering His confessors and His martyrs, soothing the anguish of their pains, and filling their hearts with His peace. His the impulse which spoke in the thunder of Savonarola, which guided the calm wis- dom of Erasmus, which inspired the deep ethics of the God-intoxicated Spinoza. His the energy which impelled Roger Bacon, Galileo, and Paracelsus in their searchings into nature. His the beauty that allured Fra Angelica and Raphael and Leonardo da Vinci, that inspired the genius of Michel- angelo, that shone before the eyes of Murillo, and that gave the power that raised the marvels of the world, the Duomo of Milan, the San Marco of Venice, the Cathedral of Florence. His the melody that breathed in the masses of Mozart, the sonatas of Beethoven, the oratorios of Handel, the fugues of Bach, the austere splendour of Brahms. His the Presence that cheered the solitary mystics, the hunted occultists, the patient seekers after truth. By persuasion and by menace, by the eloquence of a S. Francis and by the gibes of a Voltaire, by the sweet sub- mission of 3 Thomas a Kempis, and the 142 The Historical Christ rough virility of a Luther, He sought to instruct and awaken, to win into holiness or to scourge from evil. Through the long centuries He has striven and laboured, and, with all the mighty burden of the Churches to carry, He has never left uncared for or unsolaced one human heart that cried to Him for help. And now He is striving to turn to the benefit of Christendom part of the great flood of the Wisdom poured out for the refreshing of the world, and He is seeking through the Churches for some Who have ears to hear the Wisdom, and who will answer to His appeal for messengers to carry it to His flock: “Here am I; send me.” 143 CHAPTER V THE MYTHIC CHRIST WE have already seen the use that is made of Comparative Mythology against Religion, and some of its most destructive attacks have been levelled against the Christ. His birth of a. Virgin at “Christmas,” the slaughter of the Innocents, His wonder- working and His teachings, His crucifixion, resurrection, and ascension—all these events in the story of His life are pointed to in the stories of other lives, and His histori- cal existence is challenged on the strength of these identities. So far as the wonder- working and the teachings are concerned, we may briefly dismiss these first with the acknowledgment that most great Teachers have wrought works which, on the physical plane, appear as miracles in the sight of their contemporaries, but are known by oc- cultists to be done by the exercise of powers 144 The Mythic Christ possessed by all Initiates above a certain grade. The teachings He gave may also be acknowledged to be non-original; but where the student of Comparative Myth- ology thinks that he has proved that none is divinely inspired, when he shows that sim- ilar moral teachings fell from the lips of Manu, from the lips of the Buddha, from the lips of Jesus, the occultist says that cert- ainly Jesus must have repeated the teach- ings of His predecessors, since He was a messenger from the same Lodge. The pro- found verities touching the divine and the human Spirit were as much truths twenty thousand years before Jesus was born in Palestine as after He was born; and to say that the world was left without such teach- ing, and that man was left in moral dark- ness from his beginnings to twenty centu- ries ago, is to say that there was a human- ity without a Teacher, children without a Father, human souls crying for light into a. darkness that gave them no answer—a con- ception as blasphemous of God as it is des- perate for man, a conception contradicted by the appearance of every Sage, by the 10 145 Esoteric Christianity mighty literature, by the noble lives, in the thousands of ages ere the Christ came forth. Recognising then in Jesus the great Mas— ter of the West, the leading Messenger of_ the Lodge to the western world, we must face the difficulty which has made havoc of this belief in the minds of many: Why are the festivals that commemorate events in the life of Jesus found in pre-Christian re- ligions, and in them commemorate identical events in the lives of other Teachers? Comparative Mythology, which has drawn public attention to this question in modern times, may be said to be about a century old, dating from the appearance of Dulaure’s Histoz're Abrégée dc dzfierens Cultes, of Dupuis’ Origine de tous les Cul- tes, of Moor’s Hindu Pantheon, and of God- frey Higgins’ Anacalypsz's. These works were followed by a shoal of others, growing more scientific and rigid in their collection and comparison of facts, until it has be- come impossible for any educated person to even challenge the identities and similari- ties existing in every direction. Christians are not to be found, in these days, who are 146 The Mythic Christ prepared to contend that Christian symbols, rites, and ceremonies are unique—except, indeed, among the ignorant. There we still behold simplicity of belief hand-in-hand with ignorance of facts; but outside this class we do not find even the most devout Christians alleging that Christianity has not very much in common with faiths older than itself. But it is well-known that in the first centuries “after Christ” these like- nesses were on all hands admitted, and that modern Comparative Mythology is only re- peatin g with great precision that which was universally recognised in the Early Church. Justin Martyr, for instance, crowds his pages with references to the religions of his time, and if a modern assailant of Christ- ianity would cite a number of cases in which Christian teachings are identical with those of elder religions, he can find no better guides than the apologists of the second century. They quote Pagan teachings, stories, and symbols, pleading that the very identity of the Christian with these should prevent the off-hand rejection of the latter as in themselves incredible. A curious 147 Esoteric Christianity reason is, indeed, given for this identity, one that will scarcely findmany adherents in modern days. Says Justin Martyr: “Those who hand down the myths which the poets have made adduce no proof to the youths who learn them; and we proceed to demon- strate that they have been uttered by the influence of the wicked demons, to deceive and lead astray the human race. For having heard it proclaimed through the prophets that the Christ was to come, and that the ungodly among men were to be punished by fire, they put forward many to be called sons of Jupiter, under the impression that they would be able to produce in men the idea that the things which were said with regard to Christ were mere marvellous tales, like the things whch were said by the poets.” “And the devils, indeed, having heard this washing published by the prophet, instigated those who enter their temples, and are about to approach them with liba- tions and burnt offerings, also to sprinkle themselves; and they cause them also to wash themselves entirely as they depart.” “Which [the Lord’s Supper] the wicked 148 The Mythic Christ devils have imitated in the mysteries of Mithras, commanding the same thing to be done.” 1 “For I myself, when I discovered the wicked disguise which the evil spirits had thrown around the divine doctrines of the Christians, to turn aside others from joining them, laughed.” ’ These identities were thus regarded as the work of devils, copies of the Christian origin- als, largely circulated in the pre-Christian world with the object of prejudicing the reception of the truth when it came. There is a certain difficulty in accepting the earli- er statements as copies and the later as originals, but without disputing with Justin Martyr whether the copies preceded the original or the original the copies, we may be content to accept his testimony as to the existence of these identities between the faith flourishing in the Roman empire of his time and the new religion he was engaged in defending. ' Tertullian speaks equally plainly, stating 1Vol. II. Justin Martyr. First Apology, §§ 1iv., 1xii., and lxvi. 9Vol. II. Justin Martyr. Second Apology, § xiii. 149 Esoteric Christianity the objection made in his days also to Chris- tianity, that “the nations who are strangers to all understanding of spiritual powers, ascribe to their idols the im buing of waters with the self-same efficacy.” “ So they do,” he answers quite frankly, “but these cheat themselves with waters that are widowed. For washing is the channel through which they are initiated into some sacred rites of some notorious Isis or Mithra; and the Gods themselves they honour by washings. . . . . At the Appollinarian and Eleusinian games they are baptised; and they presume that the effect of their doing that is the re- generation and the remission of the penal- ties due to their perjuries. Which fact, being acknowledged, we recognise here also the zeal of the devil rivalling the things of God, while we find him too practising bapt- ism in his subjects.” 1 To solve the difficulty of these identities we must study the Mythic Christ, the Christ of the solar myths or legends, these myths being the pictorial forms in which certain profound truths were given to the world. 1Vol. VII. Tertullian, 0n Baptism, ch. v. 150 The Mythic Christ Now a “myth” is by no means what most people imagine it to be—a mere fanciful story erected on a basis of fact, or even altogether apart from fact. A myth is far truer than a history, for a history only gives a story of the shadows, whereas a myth gives a story of the substances that cast the shadows. As above so below; and first above and then below. There are cert- ain great principles according to which our system is built; there are certain laws by which these principles are worked out in detail; there are certain Beings who em- body the principles and whose activities are the laws; there are hosts of inferior beings who act as vehicles for these activities, as agents, as instruments; there are the Egos of men intermingled with all these, per- forming their share of the great kosmic drama. These multifarious workers in the invisible worlds cast their shadows on physic- al matter, and these shadows are “things” —the bodies, the objects, that make up the physical universe. These shadows give but a poor idea of the objects that cast them, just as what we call shadows down here 151 Esoteric Christianity give but a poor idea of the objects that cast them; they are mere outlines, with blank darkness in lieu of details, and have only length and breadth, no depth. History is an account, very imperfect and often distorted, of the dance of these shadows in the shadow-world of physical matter. Anyone who has seen a clever Shadow- Play, and has compared what goes on behind the screen on which the shadows are cast with the movements of the shadows on the screen, may have a vivid idea of the illusory nature of the shadow-actions, and may draw therefrom several not misleading analogies.1 Myth is an account of the movements of those who cast the shadows; and the lan- guage in which the account is given is 'what is called the language of symbols. Just as here we have words which stand for things —as the word “table” is a symbol for a recognised article of a certain kind—so do symbols stand for objects on higher planes. 1The student might read Plato’s account of the “ Cave” and its inhabitants, remembering that Plato was an Initiate. Republic, Bk. vii. 152 The Mythic Christ They are a pictorial alphabet, used by all myth-writers, and each has its recognised meaning. A symbol is used to signify a certain object just as words are used down here to distinguish one thing from another, and so a knowledge of symbols is necessary for the reading of a myth. For the origin- al tellers of great myths are ever Initiates, who are accustomed to use the symbolic lan- guage, and who, of course, use symbols in their fixed and accepted meanings. A symbol has a chief meaning, and then various subsidiary meanings related to that chief meaning. For instance, the Sun is the symbol of the Logos; that is its chief or primary significance. But it stands also for an incarnation of the Logos, or for any of the great Messengers who represent Him for the time, as an ambassador represents his King. High Initiates who are sent on special missions to incarnate among men and live with them for a time as Rulers or Teachers, would be designated by the symbol of the Sun; for though it is not their symbol in an individual sense, it is theirs in virtue of their ofiice. 153 Esoteric Christianity All those who are signified by this symbol have certain characteristics, pass through certain situations, perform certain activi- ties, during their lives on earth. The Sun is the physical shadow, or body, as it is called, of the Logos; hence its yearly course in nature reflects His activity, in the partial way in which a shadow represents the activity of the object that casts it. The Logos, “the Son of God,” descending into matter, has as shadow the annual course of the Sun, and the Sun-Myth tells it. Hence, again, an incarnation of the Logos, or one of His high ambassadors, will also represent that activity, shadow-like, in His body as a man. Thus will necessarily arise identities in the life-histories of these ambassadors. In fact, the absence of such identities would at once point out that the person concerned was not a full ambassador, and that his mission was of a lower order. The Solar Myth, then, is a story which primarily representing the activity of the Logos, or Word, in the kosmos, secondarily embodies the life of one who is an incarna- tion of the Logos, or is one of His ambas- 154 The Mythic Christ sadors. The Hero of the myth is usually represented as a God, or Demi-God, and his life, as will be understood by what has been said above, must be outlined by the course of the Sun, as the shadow of the Logos. The part of the course lived out during the human life is that which falls between the winter solstice and the reaching of the zenith in summer. The Hero is born at the Winter solstice, dies at the spring equinox, and, conquering death, rises into mid-heaven. The following remarks are interesting in this connection, though looking at myth in a more general way, as an allegory, pictur- ing inner truths: “Alfred de Vigny has said that legend is frequently more true than history, because legend recounts not acts which are often incomplete and abort- ive, but the genius itself of great men and great nations. It is pre-eminently to the Gospel that this beautiful thought is applic- able, for the Gospel is not merely the narra- tion of what has been; it is the sublime narration of what is and what always will be. Ever will the Saviour of the world be 155 Esoteric Christianity adored by the kings of intelligence, repre- sented by the Magi; ever will He multiply the eucharistic bread, to nourish and com- fort our souls; ever, when we invoke Him in the night and the tempest, will He come to us walking on the waters, ever will He stretch forth His hand and make us pass over the crests of the billows; ever will He cure our distempers and give back light to our eyes; ever will He appear to His faith- ful, luminous and transfigured upon Tabor, interpreting the law of Moses and moderat- ing the zeal of Elias.” ‘ We shall find that myths are very closely related to the Mysteries, for part of the Mysteries consisted in showing living pic- tures of the occurrences in the higher worlds that became embodied in myths. In fact in the Pseudo-Mysteries, mutilated fragments of the living pictures of the true Mysteries were represented by actors who acted out a drama, and many secondary myths are these dramas put into words. The broad outlines of the story of the Sun-God are very clear, the eventful life of lEliphas Lévi. The Mysteries of Magic, p. 48. 156 The Mythic Christ ‘ r . . V: r.j the Sun-God being spanned within the first six months of the solar year, the other six being employed in the general protecting and preserving. He is always born at the winter solstice, after the shortest day in the year, at the midnight of the 24th of Decem- ber, when the sign Virgo is rising above the horizon; born as this sign is rising, he is born always of a virgin, and she remains a virgin after she has given birth to her Sun-Child, as the celestial Virgo remains unchanged and unsullied when the Sun comes forth from her in the heavens. Weak, feeble as an infant is he, born when the days are shortest and the nights are longest —we are on the north of the equatorial line— surrounded with perils in his infancy, and the reign of the darkness far longer than his in his early days. But he lives through all the threatening dangers, and the day lengthens towards the spring equinox, till the time comes for the crossing over, the crucifixion, the date varying with each year. The Sun-God is sometimes found sculptured within the circle of the horizon, with the head and feet touching the circle at north 157 Esoteric Christianity and south, and the outstretched hands at east and west—“He was crucified.” After this he rises triumphantly and ascends into heaven, and ripens the corn and the grape, giving his very life to them to make their substance and through them to his wor- shippers. The God who is born at the dawning of December 25th is ever crucified at the spring equinox, and ever gives his life as food to his worshippers—these are among the most salient marks of the Sun- God. The fixity of'the birth-date and the variableness of the death-date are full of significance, when we remember that the one is a fixed and the other a variable solar position. “Easter” is a movable event, calculated by the relative positions of sun and moon, an impossible way of fixing year by year the anniversary of a historical event, but a very natural and indeed inevit- able way of calculating a solar festival. These changing dates do not point to the history of a man, but to the Hero of a solar myth. These events are reproduced in the lives of the various Solar Gods, and antiquity 158 The Mythic Christ teems with illustrations of them. Isis of Egypt like Mary of Bethlehem was our Im- maculate Lady, Star of the Sea, Queen of Heaven, Mother of God. We see her in pictures standing on the crescent moon, star-crowned; she nurses her child Horus, and the cross appears on the back of the seat in which he sits on his mother’s knee. The Virgo of the Zodiac is represented in ancient drawings as a woman suckling a child—the type of all future Madonnas with their divine Babes, showing the origin of ' the symbol. Devaki is likewise figured with the divine Krishna in her arms, as is Mylitta, or Istar, of Babylon, also with the recurrent crown of stars, and with her child Tammuz on her knee. Mercury and JES- culapius, Bacchus and Hercules, Perseus and the Dioscuri, Mithras and Zarathustra, were all of divine and human birth. The relation of the winter solstice to Jesus is also significant. The birth of Mithras was celebrated in the winter solstice with great rejoicings, and Horus was also then born: “His birth is one of the great- est mysteries of the [Egyptian] religion. 159 Esoteric Christianity Pictures representing it appeared on the walls of temples. . . . He was the child of Deity. At Christmas time, or that answer- ing to our festival, his image was brought out of the sanctuary with peculiar ceremo- nies, as the image of the infant Bambino is still brought out and exhibited at Rome.” 1 On the fixing of the 25th December as the birthday of Jesus, Williamson has the following: “All Christians know that the 25th December is now the recognised festi- val of the birth of Jesus, but few are aware that this has not always been so. There have been, it is said, one hundred and thirty-six different dates fixed on by differ- ent Christian sects. Lightfoot gives it as 15th September, others as in February or August. Epiphanius mentions two sects, one celebrating it in June, the other in July. The matter was finally settled by Pope Julius I., in 337 A.D., and S. Chrysos~ tom, writing in 390, says: ‘On this day [75.63. 25th December] also the birth of Christ ‘Bonwick. Egyptian Belief, p. 157. Quoted in Williamson’s Great Law, p. 26. 160 The Mythic Christ was lately fixed at Rome, in order that while the heathen were busy with their ceremonies [the Brumalia, in honour of Bacchus] the Christians might perform their rites undisturbed.’ Gibbon in his Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, writes: ‘The [Christian] Romans, as ignorant as their brethren of the real date of his [Christ’s] birth fixed the solemn festival to the 25th December, the Brumalia or winter solstice, when the Pagans annually celeb- rated the birth of the Sun.’ King, in his Gnostics and their Remains, also says: ‘The ancient festival held on the 25th December in honour of the birthday of the Invincible One,1 and celebrated by the great games at the Circus, was afterwards trans- ferred to the commemoration of the birth of Christ, the precise date of which many of the Fathers confess was then unknown’; while at the present day Canon Farrar writes that ‘all attempts to discover the month and day of the nativity are useless. 1The festival “Natalis Solis Invicti,” the birthday of the Invincible Sun. 11 161 Esoteric Christianity No data whatever exist to enable us to de- termine them with even approximate accu- racy.’ From the foregoing it is apparent that the great festival of the winter solstice has been celebrated during past ages, and in widely separated lands, in honour of the birth of a God, who is almost invariably alluded to as a ‘Saviour,’ and whose mother is referred to as a pure virgin. The striking resemblances, too, which have been instanced not only in the birth but in the life of so many of these Saviour-Gods are far too numerous to be accounted for by any mere coincidence.” I In the case of the Lord Buddha we may see how a myth attaches itself to a histori- cal personage. The story of His life is well known, and in the current Indian accounts the birth-story is simple and human. But in the Chinese account He is born of a vir- gin, Mayadevi, the archaic myth finding in Him a new Hero. ‘Williamson. The Great Law, pp. 40—42. Those who wish to study this matter as one of Comparative Religion cannot do better than read The Great Law, whose author is a profoundly religious man and a Christian. 162 The Mythic Christ Williamson also tells us that fires were and are lighted on the 25th December on the hills among Keltic peoples. and these are still known among the Irish and the Scotch Highlanders as Bheil or Baaltinne. the fires thus bearing the name of Bel. Bal. or Baal. their ancient Deity. the SumGod. though now lighted in honour of Christ.‘ Rightly considered. the Christmas festi- val should take on new elements of rejoic- ing and of sacredness. when the lovers of Christ see in it the repetition of an ancient solemnity. see it stretching all the world over, and far. far back into dim antiquity: so that the Christmas bells are ringing throughout human history. and sound musically out of the far-off night of time. Xot in exclusive possession. but in universal acceptance. is found the hall-mark of truth. The death-date, as said above, is not a fixed one. like the birth-date. The date of the death is calculated by the relative positions of Sun and Moon at the spring equinox. varying with each year. and the death-date of each Solar Hero is found to ‘13't'd.. pp. 36. 37. 163 Esoteric Christianity be celebrated in this connection. The animal adopted as the symbol of the Hero is the sign of the Zodiac in which the Sun is at the vernal equinox of his age, and this varies with the precession of the equinoxes. Oannes of Assyria had the sign of Pisces, the Fish, and is thus figured. Mithra is in Taurus, and, therefore, rides on a Bull, and Osiris was worshipped as Osiris-Apis, or Serapis, the Bull. Merodach of Babylon was worshipped as a Bull, as was Astarte of Syria. When the Sun is in the sign of Aries, the Ram or Lamb, we have Osiris again as Ram, and so also Astarte, and Jupiter Ammon, and it is this same animal that became the symbol of J esus—the Lamb of God. The use of the Lamb as His symbol, often leaning on a cross, is common in the sculptures of the catacombs. On this Williamson says: “In the course of time the Lamb was represented on the cross, but it was not until the sixth synod of Constan- tinople, held about the year 680, that it was ordained that instead of the ancient symbol, the figure of a man fastened to a cross should be represented. This canon 164 The Mythic Christ was confirmed by Pope Adrian I.”1 The very ancient Pisces is also assigned to Jesus, and He is thus pictured in the catacombs. The death and resurrection of the Solar Hero at or about the vernal equinox is as wide-spread as his birth at the winter solstice. Osiris was then slain by Typhon, and He is pictured on the circle of the horiz- on, with outstretched arms, as if crucified -—-a posture originally of benediction, not of " sufiering. The death of Tammuz was annually bewailed at the spring equinox in Babylonia and Syria, as were Adonis in Syria and Greece, and Attis in Phrygia, pictured “as a man fastened with a lamb at the foot.”2 Mithras’ death was similarly celebrated in Persia, and that of Bacchus and Dionysius—one and the same—in Greece. In Mexico the same idea re-appears, as usual accompanied with the cross. In all these cases the mourning for the death is immediately followed by the rejoic- ing over the resurrection, and on this it is interesting to notice that the name of 1The Great Law, p. 116. 9112221., p. 58. 165 Esoteric Christianity Easter has been traced to the virgin-mother of the slain Tammuz, Ishtar.1 It is interesting also to notice that the fast preceding the death at the vernal equi- nox,—the modern Lent—is found in Mexi- co, Egypt, Persia, Babylon, Assyria, Asia Minor, in some cases definitely for forty days.2 In the Pseudo-Mysteries, the Sun-God story was dramatised, and in the ancient Mysteries it was lived by the Initiate, and hence the solar “myths” and the great facts of Initiation became interwoven together. Hence when the Master Christ became the Christ of the Mysteries, the legends of the older Heroes of those Mysteries gathered round Him, and the stories were again recited with the latest divine Teacher as the representative of the Logos in the Sun. Then the festival of His nativity became the immemorial date when the Sun was born of the Virgin, when the mid- night sky was filled with the rejoicing hosts of the celestials, and Very early, very early, Christ was born. mm, p. 56. 911%., pp. 120—123. 166 - The Mythic Christ As the great legend of the Sun gathered round Him, the sign of the Lamb became that of His crucifixion as the sign of the Virgin had become that of His birth. We have seen that the Bull was sacred to Mithras and the Fish to Cannes, and that the Lamb was sacred to Christ, and for the same reason; it was the sign of the spring equinox, at the period of history in which He crossed the great circle of the horizon, was “crucified in space.” These Sun myths, ever recurring through -- out the ages, with a different name for their Hero in each new recension, cannot pass unrecognised by the student, though they may naturally and rightly be ignored by the devotee; and when they are used as a weapon to mutilate or destroy the majestic figure of the Christ, they must be met, not by denying the facts, but by understanding the deeper meaning of the stories, the spiritual truths that the legends expressed under a veil. Why have these legends mingled with the history of Jesus, and crystallised round Him, as a historical personage? These are 167 Esoteric Christianity really the stories not of a particular indiv- idual named Jesus but of the universal Christ; of a Man who symbolised a Divine Being, and who represented a fundament- al truth in nature; a Man who filled a. cert- ain office and held a certain characteristic position towards humanity; standing towards humanity in a special relationship, renewed age after age, as generation suc- ceeded generation, as race gave way to race. Hence He was, as are all such, the “Son of Man,” a peculiar and distinctive title, the title of an oflice, not of an individual. The Christ of the Solar Myth was the Christ of the Mysteries, and we find the secret of the mythic in the mystic Christ. 168 CHAPTER VI THE MYSTIC CHRIST WE now approach that deeper side of the Christ story that gives it its real hold upon the hearts of men. We approach that per- ennial life which bubbles up from an unseen source, and so baptises its representative with its lucent flood that human hearts cling round the Christ, and feel that they could almost more readily reject the apparent facts of history than deny that which they intuitively feel to be a vital, an essential truth of the higher life. We draw near the sacred portal of the Mysteries, and lift a corner of the veil that hides the sanctuary. We have seen that, go back as far as we may into antiquity, we find everywhere recog- nised the existence of a hidden teaching, a secret doctrine, given under strict and exacting conditions to approved candidates 169 Esoteric Christianity by the Masters of Wisdom. Such candidates were initiated into “The Mysteries ”—a name that covers in antiquity, as we have seen, all that was most spiritual in religion, all that was most profound in philosophy, all that was most valuable in science. Every great Teacher of antiquity passed through the Mysteries and the greatest were the Hierophants of the Mysteries; each who came forth into the world to speak of the invisible worlds had passed through the portal of Initiation and had learned the secret of the Holy Ones from Their own lips: each who came forth came forth with the same story, and the solar myths are all versions of this story, identi- cal in their essential features, varying only in their local colour. This story is primarily that of the descent of the Logos into matter, and the Sun-God is aptly His symbol, since the Sun is His body, and He is often described as “He that dwelleth in the Sun.” In one aspect, the Christ of the Mysteries is the Logos descending into matter, and the great Sun- Myth is the popular teaching of this 170 The Mystic Christ sublime truth. As in previous cases, the Divine Teacher, who brought the Ancient Wisdom and republished it in the world, was regarded as a special manifestation of the Logos, and the Jesus of the Churches was gradually draped with the stories which belonged to this great One; thus He became identified, in Christian nomenclature, with the Second Person in the Trinity, the Logos, or Word of Grod,1 and the salient events recounted in the myth of the Sun- God became the salient events of the story of Jesus, regarded as the incarnate Deity, the “mythic Christ.” As in the macro- cosm, the kosmos, the Christ of the Myst- eries represents the Logos, the Second Person in the Trinity, so in the microcosm, man, does He represent the second aspect of the Divine Spirit in man—hence called in man “the Christ.”2 The second aspect of the 1 See on this the opening of the J ohannine Gospel, i. 1—5. The name Logos, ascribed to the manifested God, shaping matter—“ all things were made by Him ”—is Platonic, and is hence directly derived from the Mysteries; ages before Plato, Vak, Voice, derived from the same source, was used among Hindus. 9 See Ante, p. 123. 171 Esoteric Christianity Christ of the Mysteries is then the life of the Initiate, the life which is entered on at the first great Initiation, at which the Christ is born in man, and after which He develops in man. To make this quite in- telligible, we must consider the conditions imposed on the candidate for Initiation, and the nature of the Spirit in man. Only those could be recognised as candi- dates for Initiation who were already good as men count goodness, according to the strict measure of the law. Pure, holy, without defilement, clean from sin, living Without transgression—such were some of the descriptive phrases used of them.1 Intelligent also must they be, of well- developed and well-trained minds.2 The evolution carried on in the world life after life, developing and mastering the powers of the mind, the emotions, and the moral sense, learning through exoteric religions, practising the discharge of duties, seeking to help and lift others—all this belongs to the ordinary life of an evolving man. When 1See Ante, pp. 92-93. ’See Ante, p. 84. 172 The Mystic Christ all this is done, the man has become “a. good man,” the Chrestos of the Greeks, and this he must be ere he can become the Christos, the Annointed. Having accom- plished the exoteric good life, he becomes a candidate for the esoteric life, and enters on the preparation for Initiation, which con- sists in the fulfilment of certain conditions. These conditions mark out the attributes he is to acquire, and while he is labouring to create these, he is sometimes said to be treading the Probationary Path, the Path which leads up to the “Strait Gate,” be- yond which is the “Narrow Way,” or the “Path of Holiness,” the “Way of the Cross.” He is not expected to develop these attributes perfectly, but he must - have made some progress in all of them, ere the Christ can be born in him. He must prepare a pure home for that Divine Child who is to develop within him. The first of these attributes—they are all mental and moral—is Discrimination; this means that the aspirant must begin to separate inhis mind the Eternal from the Temporary, the Real from the Unreal, the 173 Esoteric Christianity True from the False, the Heavenly from the Earthly. “The things which are seen are temporal,” says the Apostle; “but the things which are not seen are eternal.”1 Men are constantly living under the glamour of the seen, and are blinded by it to the unseen. The aspirant must learn to dis- criminate between them, so that what is unreal to the world may become real to him, and that which is real to the world may to him become unreal, for thus only is it poss- ible to “walk by faith, not by sight.” ’ And thus also must a man become one of those of whom the Apostle says that they “are of full age, even those who by reason of use have their senses exercised to discern both good and evil.”8 Next, this sense of un- reality must breed in him Disgust with the unreal and the fleeting, the mere husks of life, unfit to satisfy hunger, save the hunger of swine.‘ This stage is described in the emphatic language of Jesus: “If any man come to me, and hate not his father, and mother, and wife, and children, and breth- 1 II. Cor. iv. 18. 9H. Cor. v. 7. 3Heb. v. 14. 48. Luke xv. 16. 174: The Mystic Christ ren, and sisters, yea, and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple.” 1 Truly a “hard saying,” and yet out of this hatred will spring a deeper, truer, love, and the stage may not be escaped on the way to the Strait Gate. Then the aspirant must learn Con- trol of thoughts, and this will lead to Con- trol of actions, the thought being, to the inner eye, the same as the action: “ Whoso- ever looketh on a woman to lust after her, hath committed adultery with her already in his heart.”2 He must acquire Endu- rance, for they who aspire to tread “the Way of the Cross ” will have to brave long and bitter sufierings, and they must be able to endure, “as seeing Him who is invisi— ble.”a He must add to these Tolerance, if he would be the child of Him Who “maketh His sun to rise on the evil, and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the un- just,”4 the disciple of Him who bade His apostles not to forbid a man to use His name because he did not follow with them.“ Further, he must acquire the Faith to 1Ibid., xiv. 26. 98. Matt. v. 28. 3Heb. xi. 27. 48. Matt. v. 45. 5 S. Luke ix. 49, 50. 175 Esoteric Christianity which nothing is impossible,1 and the Bal- ance which is described by the Apostle.2 Lastly, he must seek only “those things which are above,” and long to reach the beatitude of the vision of and union with God.‘ When a man has wrought these qualities into his character he is regarded as . fit for Initiation, and the Guardians of the Mysteries will open for him the Strait Gate. Thus, but thus only, he becomes the pre- pared candidate. Now, the Spirit in man is the gift of the Supreme God, and contains within itself the three aspects of the Divine Life—Intel- ligence, Love, Will—being the Image of God. As it evolves, it first develops the aspect of Intelligence, develops the intellect, and this evolution is effected in the ordi- nary life in the world. To have done this to a high point, accompanying it with moral development, brings the evolving man to the condition of the candidate. The second aspect of the Spirit is that of Love, and the 1S. Matt. xv'ii. 20. 9II. Cor. vi. 8-10. 3Col. iii. 1. ‘8. Matt. v. 8, and S. John xvii. 21. 176 The Mystic Christ evolution of that is the evolution of the Christ. In the true Mysteries this evolution is undergone—the disciple’s life is the Mys- tery Drama, and the Great Initiations mark its stages. In the Mysteries performed on the physical plane these used to be dramati- cally represented, and the ceremonies fol- lowed in many respects “the pattern” ever shown forth “on the Mount,” for they were the shadows in a deteriorating age of the mighty Realities in the spiritual world. The Mystic Christ, then, is twofold—the .Logos, the Second Person of the Trinity, descending into matter, and the Love, or second, aspect of the unfolding Divine Spirit in man. The one represents kosmic pro- cesses carried on in the past and is the root of the Solar Myth; the other represents a process carried on in the individual, the concluding stage of his human evolution, and added many details in the Myth. Both of these have contributed to the Gospel story, and together form the Image of the “Mys- tic Christ.” Let us consider first the kosmic Christ, Deity becoming enveloped in matter, the 12 177 Esoteric Christianity becoming incarnate of the Logos, the cloth- ing of God in “flesh.” When the matter which is to form our solar system is separated off from the infin- ite ocean of matter which fills space, the Third Person of the Trinity—the Holy Spirit ——pours His Life into this matter to vivify it, that it may presently take form. It is then drawn together, and form is given to it by the life of the Logos, the Second Per- son of the Trinity, who sacrifices Himself by putting on the limitations of matter, becom- ing the “Heavenly Man,” in whose Body all forms exist, of whose Body all forms are part. This was the kosmic story, dramat- ically shown in the Mysteries—in the true Mysteries seen as it occurred in space, in the physical plane Mysteries represented by magical or other means, and in some parts by actors. These processes are very distinctly stated in the Bible; when the “Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters” in the darkness that was “upon the face of the deep,” 1 the great deep of matter showed no 1 Gen. i. 2. 178 The Mystic Christ forms, it was void, inchoate. Form was given by the Logos, the Word, of whom it is written that “all things were made by Him; and without Him was not anything made that was made.”1 0. W. Leadbeater has well put it: “The result of this first great outpouring [the ‘ moving ’ of the Spir- it] is the quickening of that wonderful and glorious vitality which pervades all matter (inert though it may seem to our dim physi- cal eyes), so that the atoms of the various planes develop, when electrified by it, all sorts of previously latent attractions and re- pulsions, and enter into combinations of all kinds.”2 Only when this work of the Spirit has been done can the Logos, the kosmic Mystic Christ, take on Himself the clothing of mat- ter, entering in very truth the Virgin’s womb, the womb of Matter as yet virgin, unproductive. This matter had been vivi- fied by the Holy Spirit, who, overshadowing 1S. John i. 3. 9 The Christian Creed, p. 29. This is a most valuable and fascinating little book, on the mystical meaning of the creeds. 179 Esoteric Christianity r— the Virgin, poured into it His life, thus pre- paring it to receive the life of the Second Logos, who took this matter as the vehicle for His energies. This is the becoming in- carnate of the Christ, the taking flesh— “Thou did’st not despise the Virgin’s womb.” In the Latin and English translations of the original Greek text of the Nicene Creed, the phrase which describes this phase of the descent has changed the prepositions and so changed the sense. The original ran: “and was incarnate of the Holy Ghost and the Virgin Mary,” whereas the translation reads: “and was incarnate by the Holy Ghost of the Virgin Mary.” 1 The Christ “takes form not of the ‘Virgin’ matter alone, but of matter which is al- ready instinct and pulsating with the life of the Third Logos,a so that both the life and the matter surround Him as a vesture.” 3 This is the descent of the Logos into mat- ter, described as the birth of the Christ of lIbz‘d., p. 42. 9 A name of the Holy Ghost. 8Ibz’d., p. 43. 180 The Mystic Christ a Virgin, and this, in the Solar Myth, be- comes the birth of the Sun-God as the sign Virgo rises. Then come the early workings of the Logos in matter, aptly typified by the in- fancy of the myth. To all the feebleness of infancy His majestic powers bow them- selves, letting but little play forth on the tender forms they ensoul. Matter impris- ons, seems as though threatening to slay, its infant King, whose glory is veiled by the limitations He has assumed. Slowly He shapes it towards high ends, and lifts it into manhood, and then stretches Himself on the cross of matter that He may pour forth from that cross all the powers of His surrendered life. This is the Logos of whom Plato said that He was in the fig- ure of a cross on the universe; this is the Heavenly Man, standing in space, with arms outstretched in blessing; this is the Christ crucified, whose death on the cross of mat- ter fills all matter with His life. Dead He seems and buried out of sight, but He rises again clothed in the very matter in which He seemed to perish, and carries up His 181 Esoteric Christianity body of now radiant matter into heaven, where it receives the downpouring life of the Father, and becomes the vehicle of man’s immortal life. For it is the life of the Logos which forms the garment of the Soul in man, and He gives it that men may live through the ages and grow to the meas- ure of His own stature. Truly are we clothed in Him, first materially and then spiritually. He sacrificed Himself to bring many sons into glory, and He is with us always, even to the end of the age. The crucifixion of Christ, then, is part of the great kosmic sacrifice, and the allegori- cal representation of this in the physical Mysteries, and the sacred symbol of the crucified man in space, became materialised into an actual death by crucifixion, and a crucifix bearing a dying human form; then this story, now the story of a man, was at- tached to the Divine Teacher, Jesus, and became the story of His physical death, While the birth from a Virgin, the danger- encircled infancy, the resurrection and as-‘ cension, became also incidents in His human life. The Mysteries disappeared, but their 182 The Mystic Christ grandiose and graphic representations of the kosmic work of the Logos encircled and uplifted the beloved figure of the Teacher of J udaea, and the kosmic Christ of the Myste- ries, with the lineaments of the Jesus of history, thus became the central Figure of the Christian Church. But even this was not all; the last touch of fascination is added to the Christ-story by the fact that there is WW the Mysteries, close and dear to the 1human .,¢‘J\"' Christ who 1s in "every”. one of ”us, is born and lives, 1swc'r-uc1fied rises from the dead, and ascends into heaven, in every suffering and triumphant “Son of Man.” The life-story of every Initiate into the true, the heavenly Mysteries, is told in its salient features in the Gospel biography. For this reason, S. Paul speaks as we have seen1 of the birth of the Christ in the disci- ple, and of His evolution and His full stat- ure therein. Every man is a potential Christ, and the unfolding of the Christ-life #4 ' Ante, p. 123. 183 Esoteric Christianity in a man follows the outline of the Gospel story in its striking incidents, which we have seen to be universal, and not particular. There are five great Initiations in the life of a Christ, each one marking a stage in the unfolding of the Life of Love. They are given now, as of old, and the last marks the final triumph of the Man who has de- veloped into Divinity, who has transcended humanity, and has become a Saviour of the world. Let us trace this life-story, ever newly re- peated in spiritual experience, and see the Initiate living out the life of the Christ. At the first great Initiation the Christ is born in the disciple; it is then that be real- ises for the first time in himself the out- pouring of the divine Love, and experiences that marvellous change which makes him feel himself to be one with all that lives. This is the “Second Birth,” and at that birth the heavenly ones rejoice, for he is born into “the kingdom of heaven,” as one of the “little ones,” as “a little child ”—the names ever given to the new Initiates. Such is the meaning of the words of Jesus, 184 The Mystic Christ that a man must become a little child to enter into the Kingdom.1 It is significantly said in some of the early Christian writers that Jesus was “born in a cave”——the “stable ”of the gospel narrative; the “Cave of Initiation” is a well-known ancient phrase, and the Initiate is ever born there- in; over that cave, “where the young child ” is, burns the “Star of Initiation,” the Star that ever shines forth in the East when a Child-Christ is born. Every such child is surrounded by perils and menaces, strange dangers that befall not other babes; for he is anointed with the chrism of the second birth and the Dark Powers of the unseen world ever seek his undoing. Despite all trials, however, he grows into manhood, for the Christ once born can never perish, the Christ once beginning to develop can never fail in his evolution; his fair life expands and grows, ever increasing in wisdom and in spiritual stature, until the time comes for the second great Initiation, the Baptism of the Christ by Water and the Spirit, that 1S. Matt. xviii. 3. 185 Esoteric Christianity gives him the powers necessary for the Teacher, who is to go forth and labour in the world as “the beloved Son.” Then there descends upon him in rich measure the divine Spirit, and the glory of the unseen Father pours down its pure radi- ance on him; but from that scene of bless- ing is he led by the Spirit into the wilder- ness and is once more exposed to the ordeal of fierce temptations. For now the powers of the Spirit are unfolding themselves in him, and the Dark Ones strive to lure him from his path by these very powers, bidding him use them for his own helping instead of resting on his Father in patient trust. In the swift, sudden transitions which test his strength and faith, the whisper of the embodied Tempter follows the voice of the Father, and the burning sands of the wilderness scorch the feet erstwhile laved in the cool waters of the holy river. Con- queror over these temptations he passes into the world of men to use for their helping the powers he would not put forth for his own needs, and he who would not turn one stone to bread for the stilling of his own 186 The Mystic Christ cravings feeds “five thousand men, besides Women and children,” with a few loaves. Into his life of ceaseless service comes an- other brief period of glory, when he ascends “a high mountain apart”——the sacred Mount of Initiation. There he is transfig- ured and there meets some of his great Forerunners, the Mighty Ones of old who trod where he now is treading. He passes thus the third great Initiation, and then the shadow of his coming Passion falls on him, and he steadfastly sets his face to go to J erusalem—repelling the tempting words of one of his disciples—Jerusalem, Where awaits him the baptism of the Holy Ghost and of Fire. After the Birth, the attack by Herod; after the Baptism, the temptation in the wilderness; after the Transfigura- tion, the setting forth towards the last stage of the Way of the Cross. Thus is triumph ever followed by ordeal, until ’ the goal is reached. Still grows the life of love, ever fuller and more perfect, the Son of Man shining forth more clearly as the Son of God, until the time draws near for his final battle, and the 187 Esoteric Christianity fourth great Initiation leads him in tri- umph into Jerusalem, into sight of Geth- semane and Calvary. He is now the Christ ready to be offered, ready for the sacrifice on the cross. He is now to face the bitter agony in the Garden, where even his chosen ones sleep while he wrestles with his mortal anguish, and for a moment prays that the cup may pass from his lips; but the strong will triumphs and he stretches out his hand to take and drink, and in his loneliness an angel comes to him and strengthens him, as angels are wont to do when they see a. Son of Man bending beneath his load of agony. The drinking of the bitter cup of betrayal, of desertion, of denial, meets him as he goes forth, and alone amid his jeering foes he passes to his last fierce trial. Scourged by physical pain, pierced by cruel thorns of suspicion, stripped of his fair garments of purity in the eyes of the world, left in the hands of his foes, deserted apparently by God and man, he endures patiently all that befalls him, wistfully looking in his last ex- tremity for aid. Left still to suffer, cruci- fied, to die to the life of form, to surrender 188 The Mystic Christ all life that belongs to the lower world, sur- rounded by triumphant foes who mock him, the last horror of great darkness envelopes him, and in the darkness he meets all the forces of evil; his inner vision is blinded, he finds himself alone, utterly alone, till the strong heart, sinking in despair, cries out to the Father who seems to have abandoned him, and the human soul faces, in utter- most loneliness, the crushing agony of ap- parent defeat. Yet, summoning all 'the strength of the “unconquerable spirit,” the lower life is yielded up, its death is willingly embraced, the body of desire is abandoned, and the Initiate “descends into hell,” that no region of the universe he is to help may remain untrodden by him, that none may be too outcast to be reached by his all-em- bracing love. And then springing upwards from the darkness, he sees the light once more, feels himself again as the Son, insepar- able from the Father whose he is, rises to the life that knows no ending, radiant in the consciousness of death faced and over- come, strong to help to the uttermost every child of man, able to pour out his life into 189 Esoteric Christianity every struggling soul. Among his disciples he remains awhile to teach, unveiling to them the mysteries of the spiritual worlds, preparing them also to tread the path he has trodden, until, the earth-life over, he ascends to the Father, and, in the fifth great Initiation, becomes the Master trium- phant, the link between God and man. Such was the story lived through in the true Mysteries of old and now, and dramati- cally pourtrayed in symbols in the physical plane Mysteries, half veiled, half shown. Such is the Christ of the Mysteries in His dual aspect, Logos and man, kosmic and individual. Is it any wonder that this story, dimly felt, even when unknown, by the mystic, has woven itself into the heart, and served as an inspiration to all noble liv- ing? The Christ of the human heart is, for the most part, Jesus seen as the mystic human Christ, struggling, sufifering, dying, finally triumphant, the Man in whom humanity is seen crucified and risen, whose victory is the promise of victory to every one who, like Him, is faithful through death and beyond—the Christ who can 190 The Mystic Christ never be forgotten While He is born again and again in humanity, While the world needs Saviours, and Saviours give them- selves for men. 191 CHAPTER VII THE ATONEMENT WE will now proceed to study certain aspects of the Christ-Life, as they appear among the doctrines of Christianity. In the exoteric teachings they appear as at— tached only to the Person of the Christ; in the esoteric they are seen as belonging in- deed to Him, since in their primary, their fullest and deepest meaning they form part of the activities of the Logos, but as being only secondarily reflected in the Christ, and therefore also in every Christ-Soul that treads the way of the Cross. Thus studied they will be seen to be profoundly true, while in their exoteric form they often be- wilder the intelligence and jar the emotions. Among these stands prominently forward the doctrine of the Atonement; not only has it been a. point of bitter attack from those outside the pale of Christianity, but it has wrung many sensitive consciences within 192 The Atonement that pale. Some of the most deeply Chris- tian thinkers of the last half of the nine- teenth century have been tortured with doubts as to the teaching of the churches on this matter, and have striven to see, and to present it, in a way that softens or explains away the cruder notions based on an unin- telligent reading of a few profoundly mysti- cal texts. Nowhere, perhaps, more than in connection with these should the warning of S. Peter be borne in mind: “Our beloved brother Paul also, according to the wisdom given unto him, hath written unto you—as also in all his epistles—speaking in them of these things; in which are some things hard to be understood, which they that are unlearned and unstable wrest, as they do also the other scriptures, unto their own de- struction.”1 For the texts that tell of the identity of the Christ with His brother-men have been wrested into a legal substitution of Himself for them, and have thus been used as an escape from the results of sin, in- stead of as an inspiration to righteousness. ‘2 S. Peter iii. 15, 16. 13 193 Esoteric Christianity The general teaching in the Early Church on the doctrine of the Atonement was that Christ, as the Representative of Humanity, faced and conquered Satan, the represent- ative of the Dark Powers, who held humanity in bondage, wrested his captive from him, and set him free. Slowly, as Christian teachers lost touch with spiritual truths, and they reflected their own increasing intoler- ance and harshness on the pure and loving Father of the teachings of the Christ, they represented Him as angry with man, and the Christ was made to save man from the wrath of God instead of from the bondage of evil. Then legal phrases intruded, still further materialising the once spiritual idea, and the “scheme of redemption” was forensically outlined. “The seal was set on the ‘ redemp- tion scheme ’ by Anselm in his great work, Our Deus Homo, and the doctrine which had been slowly growing into the theology of Christendom was thenceforward stamped with the signet of the Church. Roman Catholics and Protestants, at the time of the Reformation, alike believed in the vicar- ious and substitutionary character of the 194 The Atonement atonement wrought by Christ. There is no dispute between them on this point. I pre- fer to allow the Christian divines to speak for themselves as to the character of the atonement. . . . Luther teaches that ‘ Christ did truly and effectually feel for all mankind the wrath of God, malediction, and death.’ Flavel says that ‘ to wrath, to the wrath of an infinite God without mix- ture, to the very torments of hell, was Christ delivered, and that by the hand of his own father.’ The Anglican homily preaches that ‘sin' did pluck God out of heaven to make him feel the horrors and pains of death,’ and that man, being a fire- brand of hell and a bondsman of the devil, ‘ was ransomed by the death of his only and well-beloved son ’; the ‘ heat of his wrath,’ ‘his burning wrath,’ could only be ‘ paci- fied ’ by Jesus, ‘ so pleasant was the sacrifice and oblation of his son’s death.’ Edwards, being logical, saw that there was a gross in- justice in sin being twice punished, and in the pains of hell, the penalty of sin, being twice inflicted, first on Jesus, the substitute of mankind, and then on the lost, a portion ~ 195 Esoteric Christianity of mankind; so he, in common with most Calvinists, finds himself compelled to restrict the atonement to the elect, and declared that Christ bore the sins, not of the world, but of the chosen out of the world; he suffers ‘ not for the world, but for them Whom thou hast given me.’ But Edwards adheres firmly to the belief in substitution, and rejects the universal atonement for the very reason that ‘to believe Christ died for all is the surest way of proving that he died for none in the sense Christians have hitherto believed.’ He de- clares that ‘ Christ sufiered the wrath of God for men’s sins ’; that ‘ God imposed his wrath due unto, and Christ underwent the pains of hell for,’ sin. Owen regards Christ’s sufferings as ‘ a full valuable com- pensation to the justice of God for all the sins ’ of the elect, and says that he under- went ‘ that same punishment which . . . they themselves were bound to undergo.’ ” 1 To show that these views were still authoritatively taught in the churches, I wrote further: “ Stroud makes Christ drink 1A. Besant. Essay on the Atonement. 196 The Atonement ‘ the cup of the wrath of God.’ Jenkyn says ‘ He sufiered as one disowned and reprobated and forsaken of God.’ Dwight considers that he endured God’s ‘hatred and con- tempt.’ Bishop Jeune tells us that ‘ after man had done his worst, worse remained for Christ to bear. He had fallen into his father’s hands.’ Archbishop Thomson preaches that ‘the clouds of God’s wrath gathered thick over the Whole human race: they discharged themselves on Jesus only.’ He ‘ becomes a curse for us and a vessel of wrath.’ Liddon echoes the same sentiment: ‘ The apostles teach that mankind are slaves, and that Christ on the cross is paying their ransom. Christ crucified is voluntarily devoted and accursed ’; he even speaks of ‘the precise amount of ignominy and pain needed for the redemption,’ and says that the ‘divine victim’ paid more than was absolutely necessary.” 1 These are the views against which the learned and deeply religious Dr. McLeod Campbell wrote his well-known work, On the Atonement, a volume containing many 1 Ibid. 197 Esoteric Christianity true and beautiful thoughts; F. D. Maurice and many other Christian men have also striven to lift from Christianity the burden of a doctrine so destructive of all true ideas as to the relations between God and man. None the less, as we look backwards over the effects produced by this doctrine, we find that belief in it, even in its legal—and to us crude exoteric—form, is connected with some of the very highest developments of Christian conduct, and that some of the noblest examples of Christian manhood and womanhood have drawn from it their strength, their inspiration, and their com- fort. It would be unjust not to recognise this fact. And whenever we come upon a fact that seems to us startling and incon- gruous, we do well to pause upon that fact, and to endeavour to understand it. For if this doctrine contained nothing more than is seen in it by its assailants inside and outside the churches, if it were in its true meaning as repellent to the conscience and the intel- lect as it is found to be by many thoughtful Christians, then it could not possibly have exercised over the minds and hearts of men 198 The Atonement a compelling fascination, nor could it have been the root of heroic self-surrenders, of touching and pathetic examples of self- sacrifice in the service of man. Something more there must be in it than lies on the surface, some hidden kernel of life which has nourished those who have drawn from it their inspiration. In studying it as one of the Lesser Mysteries we shall find the hidden life which these noble ones have un- consciously absorbed, these souls which were so at one with that life that the form in which it was veiled could not repel them. When we come to study it as one of the Lesser Mysteries, we shall feel that for its understanding some spiritual development is needed, some opening of the inner eyes. To grasp it requires that its spirit should be partly evolved in the life, and only those who know practically something of the meaning of self-surrender will be able to catch a glimpse of what is implied in the esoteric teaching on this doctrine, as the typical manifestation of the Law of Sacrifice. We can only understand it as applied to the Christ, when we see it as a special manifest- 199 Esoteric Christianity ation of the universal law, a reflection below of the Pattern above, showing us in a concrete human life what sacrifice means. The Law of Sacrifice underlies our system and all systems, and on it all universes are builded. It lies at the root of evolution, and alone makes it intelligible. In the doct- rine of the Atonement it takes a concrete form in connection with men who have reached a certain stage in spiritual develop- ment, the stage that enables them to realise their oneness with humanity, and to become, in very deed and truth, Saviours of men. All the great religions of the world have declared that the universe begins by an act of sacrifice, and have incorporated the idea of sacrifice into their most solemn rites. In Hinduism, the dawn of manifestation is said to be by sacrifice,l mankind is emanated with sacrifice,“ and it is Deity who sacrifices Himself; 3 the object of the sacrifice is mani- festation; He cannot become manifest un- less an act of sacrifice be performed, and in- 1Brihaddrangakopanz'ghat, I. i. 1. ’Bhagavad Gitd, iii. 10. 3Brz'haddmnyak0panigkat, I. ii. 7. 200 The Atonement asmuch as nothing can be manifest until He manifests,‘ the act of sacrifice is called “the dawn” of creation. In the Zoroastrian religion it was taught that in the Existence that is boundless, un- knowable, unnameable, sacrifice was per- formed and manifest Deity appeared; Ahura- mazdao was born of an act of sacrifice.2 In the Christian religion the same idea is indicated in the phrase: “the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world,” 3 slain at the origin of things. These words can but refer to the important truth that there can be no founding of a world until the Deity has made an act of sacrifice. This act is explained as limiting Himself in order to become manifest. “The Law of Sacrifice might perhaps more truly be called The Law of Manifestation, or the Law of Love and of Life, for throughout the universe, from the highest to the lowest, it is the cause of manifestation and life.” ‘ ‘Muzaglakopanishat, II. ii. 10. ”Hang. Essays on the Parsis, pp. 12-14. 8Rev. xiii. 8. ‘W. Williamson. The Great Law, p. 406. 201 Esoteric Christianity “Now, if we study this physical world, as being the most available material, we find that all life in it, all growth, all progress, alike for units and for aggregates, depend on continual sacrifice and the endurance of pain. Mineral is sacrificed to vegetable, vegetable to animal, both to man, men to men, and all the higher forms again break up, and reinforce again with their separated constituents the lowest kingdom. It is a continual sequence of sacrifices from the lowest to the highest, and the very mark of progress is that the sacrifice from being in- voluntary and imposed becomes voluntary and self-chosen, and those who are recog- nised as greatest by man’s intellect and loved most by man’s heart are the supreme sufferers, those heroic souls who wrought, endured, and died that the race might profit by their pain. If the world be the work of the Logos, and the law of the world’s pro- gress in the whole and the parts is sacrifice, then the Law of Sacrifice must point to something in the very nature of the Logos; it must have its root in the Divine Nature itself. A little further thought shows us 202 The Atonement that if there is to be a world, a universe at all, this can only be by the One Existence conditioning Itself and thus making mani- festation possible, and that the very Logos is the Self-limited God; limited to become manifest; manifested to bring a universe into being; such self-limitation and mani- festation can only be a supreme act of sacri- fice, and what wonder that on every hand the world should show its birth-mark, and that the Law of Sacrifice should be the law of being, the law of the derived lives. “Further, as it is an act of sacrifice in order that individuals may come into exist- ence to share the Divine bliss, it is very truly a vicarious act—an act done for the sake of others; hence the fact already noted, that progress is marked by sacrifice becom- ing voluntary and self-chosen, and we real- ise that humanity reaches its perfection in the man who gives himself for men, and by his own suffering purchases for the race some lofty good. “Here, in the highest regions, is the in- most verity of vicarious sacrifice, and how- ever it may be degraded and distorted, this 203 Esoteric Christianity inner spiritual truth makes it indestructible, eternal, and the fount whence flows the spiritual energy which, in manifold forms and ways, redeems the world from evil and draws it home to God.” 1 When the Logos comes forth from “the bosom of the Father” in that “Day” when He is said to be “begotten,”a the dawn of the Day of Creation, of Manifestation, when by Him God “made the worlds,” 3 He by His own will limits Himself, making as it were a sphere enclosing the Divine Life, coming forth as a radiant orb of Deity, the Divine Substance, Spirit within and limitation, or Matter, without. This is the veil of matter which makes possible the birth of the Logos, Mary, the World-Mother, necessary for the manifestation in time of the Eternal, that Deity may manifest for the building of the worlds. That circumscription, that self-limitation, is the act of sacrifice, a voluntary action done for love’s sake, that other lives may be born from Him. Such a manifestation has been 1A. Besant. Nineteenth Century, June, 1895, “The Atonement.” 9 Heb. i. 5. 1'I Ind, 2. 204 The Atonement regarded as a death, for, in comparison with the unimaginable life of God in Himself, such circumscription in matter may truly be called death. It has been regarded, as we have seen, as a crucifixion in matter, and has been thus figured, the true origin of the symbol of the cross, whether in its so-called Greek form, wherein the vivifying of mat- ter by the. Holy Ghost is signified, or in its so-called Latin, whereby the Heavenly Man is figured, the supernal Christ.1 “In tracing the symbolism of the Latin cross, or rather of the crucifix, back into the night of time, the investigators had expected to find the figure disappear, leaving behind what they supposed to be the earlier cross- emblem. As a matter of fact exactly the reverse took place, and they were startled to find that eventually the cross drops away, leaving only the figure with uplifted arms. No longer is there any thought of pain or sorrow connected with that figure, though still it tells of sacrifice; rather is it now the symbol of the purest joy the world can hold ‘C. W. Leadbeater. The Christian Creed, pp. 54-56. 205 Esoteric Christianity —-the joy of freely giving—for it typifies the Divine Man standing in space with arms upraised in blessing, casting abroad His gifts to all humanity, pouring forth freely of Himself in all directions, descending into that ‘dense sea’ of matter, to be cribbed, cabined, and confined therein, in order that through that descent we may come into being.”1 This sacrifice is perpetual, for in every form in this universe of infinite diversity this life is enfolded, and is its very heart, the “Heart of Silence” of the Egyptian ritual, the “Hidden God.” This sacrifice is the secret of evolution. The Divine Life, cabined within a form, ever presses out- wards in order that the form may expand, but presses gently, lest the form should break ere yet it had reached its utmost limit of expansion. With infinite patience and tact and discretion, the divine One keeps up the constant pressure that expands, without loosing a force that would disrupt. In every form, in mineral, in vegetable, in ani- mal, in man, this expansive energy of the ‘Ibz’d., pp. 56, 57. 206 The Atonement Logos is ceaselessly working. That is the evolutionary force, the lifting life within the forms, the rising energy that science glimpses, but knows not whence it comes. The botanist tells of an energy within the plant, that pulls ever upwards; he knows not how, he knows not why, but he gives it a name—the vis a fronte—because he finds it there, or rather finds its results. Just as it is in plant life, so is it in other forms as well, making them more and more express- ive of the life within them. When the limit of any form is reached, and it can grow no further, so that nothing more can be gained through it by the soul of it—that germ of Himself, which the Logos is brood- ing over—then He draws away His energy, and the form disintegrates—we call it death and decay. But the soul is with Him, and He shapes for it a new form, and the death of the form is the birth of the soul into fuller life. If we saw with the eyes of the Spirit instead of with the eyes of the flesh, we should not weep over a form, which is a corpse giving back the materials out of which it was builded, but we should joy over the 207 Esoteric Christianity life passing onwards into nobler form, to expand under the unchanging process the powers still latent within. Through that perpetual sacrifice of the Logos all lives exist; it is the life by which the universe is ever becoming. This life is One, but it embodies itself in myriad forms, ever drawing them together and gently overcoming their resistance. Thus it is an At-one-ment, a unifying force, by which the separated lives are gradually made conscious of their unity, labouring to develop in each a. self-consciousness, which shall at last know itself to be one with all others, and its root One and divine. This is the primary and ever-continued sacrifice, and it will be seen that it is an outpouring of Life directed by Love, 3 vol- untary and glad pouring forth of Self for the making of other Selves. This is “the joy of thy Lord ”1 into which the faithful servant enters, significantly followed by the statement that He was hungry, thirsty, naked, sick, a stranger and in prison, in the 1S. Matt. xxv. 21, 23, 31—45. 208 The Atonement helped or neglected children of men. To the free Spirit to give itself is joy, and it feels its life the more keenly, the more it pours itself forth. And the more it gives, the more it grows, for the law of the growth of life is that it increases by pouring itself forth and not by drawing from without—by giving, not by taking. Sacrifice, then, in its primary meaning, is a thing of joy; the Logos pours Himself out to make a world, and, seeing the travail of His soul, is satis- fied.l But the word has come to be associated with suffering, and in all religious rites of sacrifice some suffering, if only that of a trivial loss to the sacrificer, is. present. It is well to understand how this change has come about, so that when the word “sacri- fice” is used the instinctive connotation is one of pain. The explanation is seen when we turn from the manifesting Life to the forms in which it is embodied, and look at the ques- tion of sacrifice from the side of the forms. While the life of Life is in giving, the life, 1Is. liii. 11. 14 209 Esoteric Christianity or persistence, of form is in taking, for the form is wasted as it is exercised, it is dimin- ished as it is exerted. If the form is to con- tinue, it must draw fresh material from outside itself in order to repair its losses, else will it waste and vanish away. The form must- grasp, keep, build into itself what it has grasped, else it cannot persist; and the law of growth of the form is to take and assimilate that which the wider uni- verse supplies. As the consciousness identi- fies itself with the form, regarding the form as itself, sacrifice takes on a painful aspect; to give, to surrender, to lose what has been acquired, is felt to undermine the persistence of the form, and thus the Law of Sacrifice becomes a law of pain instead of a law of joy. Man had to learn by the constant break- ing up of forms, and the pain involved in the breaking, that he must not identify himself with the wasting and changing forms, but with the growing persistent life, and he was taught his lesson not only by ex- ternal nature, but by the deliberate lessons of the Teachers who gave him religions. 210 The Atonement We can trace in the religions of the world four great stages of instruction in the Law of Sacrifice. First, man was taught to sac- rifice part of his material possession in order to gain increased material prosperity, and sacrifices were made in charity to men and in offerings to Deities, as we may read in the scriptures of the Hindus, the Zoroas- trians, the Hebrews, indeed all the world over. The man gave up something be valued to insure future prosperity to him- self, his family, his community, his nation. He sacrificed in the present to gain in the future. Secondly, came a lesson 3 little harder to learn; instead of physical prosper- ity and worldly good, the fruit to be gained by sacrifice was celestial bliss. Heaven was to be won, happiness was to be enjoyed on the other side of death—such was the re- ward for sacrifices made during the life led on earth. A considerable step forward was made when a man learned to give up the things for which his body craved for the sake of a distant good which he could not see nor demonstrate. He learned to surrender the 211 Esoteric Christianity visible for the invisible, and in so doing rose in the scale of being; for so great is the fascination of the visible and the tangible, that if a man be able to surrender them for the sake of an unseen world in which he believes, he has acquired much strength and has made a long step towards the realisation of that unseen world. Over and over again martyrdom has been endured, obloquy has been faced, man has learned to stand alone, hearing all that his race could pour upon him of pain, misery, and shame, looking to that which is beyond the grave. True, there still remains in this a longing for celestial glory, but it is no small thing to be able to stand alone on earth and rest on spiritual companionship, to cling firmly to the inner life when the outer is all torture. The third lesson came when a man, seeing himself as part of a greater life, was willing to sacrifice himself for the good of the whole, and so became strong enough to recognise that sacrifice was right, that a. part, a frag- ment, a unit in the sum total of life, should subordinate the part to the whole, the frag- ment to the totality. Then he learned to 212 The Atonement do right, without being affected by the out- come to his own person, to do duty, without Wishing for result to himself, to endure because endurance was right not because it would be crowned, to give because gifts were due to humanity not because they would be repaid by the Lord. The hero— soul thus trained was ready for the fourth lesson: that sacrifice of all the separated fragment possesses is to be offered because the Spirit is not really separate but is part of the divine Life, and knowing no differ- ence, feeling no separation, the man pours himself forth as part of the Life Universal, and in the expression of that Life he shares the joy of his Lord. It is in the three earlier stages that the pain-aspect of sacrifice is seen. The first meets but small sufferings; in the second the physical life and all that earth has to give may be sacrificed; the third is the great time of testing, of trying, of the growth and evolution of the human soul. For in that stage duty may demand all in which life seems to consist, and the man, still identified in feeling with the form, 213 Esoteric Christianity though knowing himself theoretically to transcend it, finds that all he feels as life is demanded of him, and questions: “If I let this go, what then will remain? ” It seems as though consciousness itself would cease with this surrender, for it must loose its hold on all it realises, and it sees nothing to grasp on the other side. An over-mastering con- viction, an imperious voice, call on him to surrender his very life. If he shrinks back, he must go on in the life of sensation, the life of the intellect, the life of the world, and as he has the joys he dared not resign, he finds a. constant dissatisfaction, a con- stant craving, a constant regret and lack of pleasure in the world, and he realises the truth of the saying of the Christ, that “he that will save his life shall lose it,”1 and that the life that was loved and clung to is only lost at last. Whereas if he risks all in obedience to the voice that summons, if he throws away his life, then in losing it, he finds it unto life eternal,2 and he discovers that the life be surrendered was only death ‘8. Matt. xvi. 25. ’S. John xii. 25. 214 The Atonement in life, that all he gave up was illusion, and that he found reality. In that choice the metal of the soul is proved, and only the pure gold comes forth from the fiery fur- nace, where life seemed to be surrendered but where life was won. And then follows the joyous discovery that the life thus won is won for all, not for the separated self, that the abandoning of the separated self has meant the realising of the Self in man, and that the resignation of the limit which alone seemed to make life possible has meant the pouring out into myriad forms, an undreamed vividness and fulness, “the power of an endless life.” 1 Such is an outline of the Law of Sacrifice, based on the primary Sacrifice of the Logos, that Sacrifice of which all other sacrifices are reflexions. We have seen how the man Jesus, the Hebrew disciple, laid down His body in glad surrender that a higher Life might descend and become embodied in the form He thus willingly sacrificed, and how by that act He lHeb. vii. 16. 215 Esoteric Christianity became a Christ of full stature, to be the Guardian of Christianity, and to pour out His life into the great religion founded by the Mighty One with whom the sacrifice had identified Him. We have seen the Christ- Soul passing through the great Initiations— born as a little child, stepping down into the river of the world’s sorrows, with the waters of which he must be baptised into his active ministry, transfigured on the Mount, led to the scene of his last combat, and triumphing over death. We have now to see in what sense he is an atonement, how in the Christ- life the Law of Sacrifice finds a perfect expression. The beginning of what may be called the ministry of the Christ come to manhood is in that intense and permanent sympathy with the world’s sorrows which is typified by the stepping down into the river. From that time forward the life must be summed up in the phrase, “He went about doing good ”; for those who sacrifice the separated life to be a channel of the divine Life, can have no interest in this world save the help- ing of others. He learns to identify himself 216 The Atonement with the consciousness of those around him, to feel as they feel, think as they think, en- joy as they enjoy, suffer as they suffer, and thus he brings into his daily waking life that sense of unity with others which he experiences in the higher realms of being. He must develop a sympathy which vibrates in perfect harmony with the many-toned chord of human life, so that he may link in himself the human and the divine lives, and become a mediator between heaven and earth. Power is now manifested in him, for the Spirit is resting on him, and he begins to stand out in the eyes of men as one of those who are able to help their younger brethren to tread the path of life. As they gather round him, they feel the power that comes out from him, the divine Life in the accred- ited Son of the Highest. The souls that are hungry come to him and he feeds them with the bread of life; the diseased with sin ap- proach him, and he heals them with the living word which cures the sickness and makes whole the soul; the blind with ignor- ance draw nigh him, and he opens their eyes 217 Esoteric Christianity by the light of his wisdom. It is the chief mark in his ministry that the lowest and the poorest, the most desperate and the most de- graded, feel in approaching him no wall of separation, feel as they throng around him welcome and not repulsion ; for there radiates from him a love that understands and that can therefore never wish to repel. However low the soul may be, he never feels the Christ-Soul as standing above him but rather as standing beside him, treading with human feet the ground he also treads; yet as filled with some strange uplifting power that raises him upwards and fills him also with new impulse and fresh inspiration. Thus he lives and labours, a true Saviour of men, until the time comes when he must learn another lesson, losing for awhile his consciousness of that divine Life of which his own has been becoming ever more and more the expression. And this lesson is that the true centre of divine Life lies with- in and not without. The Self has its centre within each human soul—truly is “the cen- tre everywhere,” for Christ is in all, and God in Christ—and no embodied life, no- 218 The Atonement thing “out of the Eternal ”1 can help him in his direst need. He has to learn that the true unity of Father and Son is to be found within and not without, and this lesson can only come in uttermost isolation, when he feels forsaken by the God outside himself. As this trial approaches, he cries out to those who are nearest to him to watch with him through his hour of darkness; and then, by the breaking of every human sym- pathy, the failing of every human love, he finds himself thrown back on the life of the divine Spirit, and cries out to his Father, feeling himself in conscious union with Him, that the cup may pass away. Having stood alone, save for that divine Helper, he is worthy to face the last ordeal, where the God without him vanishes, and only the God Within is left. “My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?” rings out the bitter cry of startled love and fear. The last loneliness descends on him, and he feels himself forsaken and alone. Yet never is the Father nearer to the Son than at the 1 Light on the Path, § 8. 219 Esoteric Christianity moment when the Christ-Soul feels himself forsaken, for as he thus touches the lowest depth of sorrow, the hour of his triumph begins to dawn. For now he learns that he must himself become the God to whom he cries, and by feeling the last pang of separ- ation he finds the eternal unity, he feels the fount of life is within, and knows himself eternal. None can become fully a Saviour of men nor sympathise perfectly with all human suffering, unless he has faced and conquered pain and fear and death unaided, save by the aid he draws from the God within him. It is easy to suffer when there is unbroken consciousness between the higher and the lower; nay, sufiering is not, while that con- sciousness remains unbroken, for the light of the higher makes darkness in the lower impossible, and pain is not pain when borne in the smile of God. There is a suffering that men have to face, that every Saviour of man must face, Where darkness is on the human consciousness, and never a glimmer of light comes through; he must know the pang of the despair felt by the human soul 220 The Atonement when there is darkness on every side, and the groping consciousness cannot find a hand to clasp. Into that darkness every Son of Man goes down, ere he rises triumphant; that bitterest experience is tasted by every Christ, ere he is “able to save them to the uttermost ” 1 who seek the Divine through him. Such a one has become truly divine, a Saviour of men, and he takes up the world- work for which all this has been the prepar- ation. Into him must pour all the forces that make against man, in order that in him they may be changed into forces that help. Thus he becomes one of the Peace- centres of the world, which transmute the forces of combat that would otherwise crush man. For the Christs of the world are these Peace-centres into which pour all warring forces, to be changed Within them and then poured out as forces that work for harmony. Part of the sufferings of the Christ not yet perfect lies in this harmonising of the 1 Heb. vii. 25. 221 Esoteric Christianity discord-making forces in the world. Al- though a. Son, be yet learns by suffering and is thus “made perfect.”1 Humanity would be far more full of combat and rent with strife were it not for the Christ-dis- ciples living in its midst, and harmonising many of the warring forces into peace. When it is said that the Christ suffers “for men,” that His strength replaces their weakness, His purity their sin, His wisdom their ignorance, a truth is spoken; for the Christ so becomes one with men that they share with Him and He with them. There is no substitution of Him for them, but the taking of their lives into His, and the pour- ing of His life into theirs. For, having risen to the plane of unity, He is able to share all He has gained, to give all He has won. Standing above the plane of separate- ness and looking down at the souls immersed in separateness, He can reach each while they cannot reach each other. Water can flow from above into many pipes, open to the reservoir though closed as regards each lHeb. v. 8, 9. 222 The Atonement other, and so He can send His life into each soul. Only one condition is needed in order that a Christ may share His strength with a younger brother: that in the separated life the human consciousness will open itself to the divine, will show itself receptive of the offered life, and take the freely outpoured gift. For so reverent is God to that Spirit which is Himself in man, that He will not even pour into the human soul a flood of strength and life unless that soul is willing to receive it. There must be an opening from below as well as an outpouring from above, the receptiveness of the lower nature as well as the willingness of the higher to give. That is the link between the Christ and the man; that is what the churches have called the outpouring of “divine grace”; that is what is meant by the “faith” necessary to make the grace effec- tive. As Giordano Bruno once put it—the human soul has windows, and can shut those windows close. The sun outside is shining, the light is unchanging; let the windows be opened and the sunlight must stream in. The light of God is beating 223 Esoteric Christianity against the windows of every human soul, and when the windows are thrown open, the soul becomes illuminated. There is no change in God, but there is a change in man; and man’s will may not be forced, else were the divine Life in him blocked in its due evolution. Thus in every Christ that rises, all humanity is lifted a step higher, and by His wisdom the ignorance of the whole world is lessened. Each man is less weak because of His strength, which pours out over all humanity and enters the separated soul. Out of that doctrine, seen narrowly, and therefore mis-seen, grew the idea of the vicarious Atonement as a legal trans- action between God and man, in which Jesus took the place of the sinner. It was not understood that One who had touched that height was verily one with all His brethren; identity of nature was mistaken for a personal substitution, and thus the spirit- ual truth was lost in the harshness of a judicial exchange. “Then he comes to a knowledge of his place in the world, of his function in nature 224 The Atonement —to be a Saviour and to make atonement for the sins of the people. He stands in the inner Heart of the world, the Holy of Holies, as a. High Priest of Humanity. He is one with all his brethren, not by a vicar- ious substitution, but by the unity of a com- mon life. Is any sinful? he is sinful in them, that his purity may purge them. Is any sorrowful? in them he is the man of sorrows; every broken heart breaks his, in every pierced heart his heart is pierced. Is any glad? in them he is joyous, and pours out his bliss. Is any craving? in them he is feeling want that he may fill them with his utter satisfaction. He has everything, and because it is his it is theirs. He is perfect; then they are perfect with him. He is strong; who then can be weak, since he is in them? He climbedto his high place that he might pour out to all below him, and he lives in order that all may share his life. He lifts the whole world with him as he rises, the path is easier for all men, because he has trodden it. “Every son of man may become such a manifested Son of God, such a Saviour of the 15 225 Esoteric Christianity world. In each such Son is ‘ God manifest in the flesh,’1 the atonement that aids all mankind, the living power that makes all things new. Only one thing is needed to bring that power into manifested activity in any individual soul; the soul must open the door and let Him in. Even He, all-per- meating, cannot force His way against His brother’s will; the human will can hold its own alike against God and man, and by the law of evolution it must voluntarily associ- ate itself with divine action, and not be broken into sullen submission. Let the will throw open the door, and the life will flood the soul. While the door is closed it will only gently breathe through it its unutter- able fragrance, that the sweetness of that fragrance may win, where the barrier may not be forced by strength. “This it is, in part, to be a Christ; but how can mortal pen mirror the immortal, or mortal words tell of that which is beyond the power of speech? Tongue may not ut- ter, the unillumined mind may not grasp, that mystery of the Son who has become 11 Tim. iii. 16. 226 The Atonement one with the Father, carrying in His bosom the sons of men.” 1 Those who would prepare to rise to such a life in the future must begin even now to tread in the lower life the path of the Shadow of the Cross. Nor should they doubt their power to rise, for to do so is to doubt the God within them. “Have faith in yourself,” is one of the lessons that comes from the higher view of man, for that faith is really in the God within. There is a way by which the shadow of the Christ-life may fall on the common life of man, and that is by doing every act as a sacrifice, not for what it will bring to the doer but for what it will bring to others, and, in the daily common life of small duties, petty actions, narrow interests, by changing the motive and thus changing all. Not one thing in the outer life need necessarily be varied; in any life sacrifice may be offered, amid any surroundings God may be served. Evolv- ing spirituality is marked not by what a man does, but by how he does it; not in the lAnnie Besant. Theosophical Review, Dec., 1898, pp. 344, 345. 227 Esoteric Christianity circumstances, but in the attitude of a man towards them, lies the opportunity of growth. “And indeed this symbol of the cross may be to us as a touchstone to disting- uish the good from the evil in many of the difficulties of life. ‘ Only those actions through which shines the light of the cross are worthy of the life of the disciple,’ says one of the verses in a book of occult max- ims; and it is interpreted to mean that all that the aspirant does should be prompted by the fervour of self-sacrificing love. The same thought appears in a later verse: ‘ When one enters the path, he lays his heart upon the cross; when the cross and the heart have become one, then hath he reached the goal.’ So, perchance, we may measure our progress by watching whether selfishness or self-sacrifice is dominant in our lives.” 1 Every life which begins thus to shape itself is preparing the cave in which the Child-Christ shall be born, and the life shall become a constant at-one-ment, bringing 1 C. W. Leadbeater. The Christian Creed, pp. 61, 62. 228 The Atonement the divine more and more into the human. Every such life shall grow into the life of a “beloved Son,” and shall have in it the glory of the Christ. Every man may Work in that direction by making every act and power a sacrifice, until the gold is purged from the dross, and only the pure ore re- mains. 229 CHAPTER VIII RESURRECTION AND ASCENSION THE doctrines of the Resurrection and Ascension of Christ also form part of the Lesser Mysteries, being integral portions of “The Solar Myth,” and of the life-story of the Christ in man. As regards Christ Himself they have their historical basis in the facts of His continu- ing to teach His apostles after His physical death, and of His appearance in the Greater Mysteries as Hierophant after His direct in- structions had ceased, until Jesus took His place. In the mythic tales the resurrection of the hero and his glorification invariably formed the conclusion of his death-story; and in the Mysteries, the body of the candi- date was always thrown into a death-like trance, during which he, as a liberated soul, travelled through the invisible world, re- turning and reviving the body after three 230 Resurrection and Ascension days. And in the life-story of the individ- ual, who is becoming a Christ, we shall find, as we study it, that the dramas of the Resurrection and Ascension are repeated. But before we can intelligently follow that story, we must master the outlines of the human constitution, and understand the natural and spiritual bodies of man. “There is a natural body, and there is a spiritual body.” 1 There are still some uninstructed people who regard man as a mere duality, made up of “soul” and “body.” Such people use the words “soul” and “spirit” as syno- nyms, and speak indifi‘erently of “soul and body,” or “spirit and body,” meaning that man is composed of two constituents, one of which perishes at death, while the other sur- vives. For the very simple and ignorant this rough division is sufficient, but it will not enable us to understand the mysteries of the Resurrection and Ascension. Every Christian who has made even a superficial study of the human constitution recognises in it three distinct constituents 1 1 Cor. xv. 44. 231 Esoteric Christianity —Spirit, Soul, and Body. This division is sound, though needing further subdivision for more profound study, and it has been used by S. Paul in his prayer that “your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless.”l That threefold division is ac- cepted in Christian Theology. The Spirit itself is really a Trinity, the reflexion and image of the Supreme Trinity, and this we shall study in the following chapter.” The true man, the immortal, who is the Spirit, is the Trinity in man. This is life, consciousness, and to this the spiritual body belongs, each aspect of the Trinity having its own Body. The Soul is dual, and comprises the mind and the emotional nature, with its appropriate garments. And the Body is the material instrument of Spirit and Soul. In one Christian view of man he is a twelve-fold being, six modifications forming the spirit- ual man, and six the natural man; accord- ing to another, he is divisible into fourteen, seven modifications of consciousness and l1 Thess. v. 23. 9 See Chapter IX., “The Trinity.” 232 Resurrection and Ascension seven corresponding types of form. This latter view is practically identical with that studied by Mystics, and it is usually spoken of as seven-fold, because there are really seven divisions, each being two-fold, having a life-side and a form-side. These divisions and subdivisions are some- what confusing and perplexing to the dull, and hence Origen and Clement, as we have seen,1 laid great stress on the need for in- telligence on the part of all who desired to become Gnostics. After all, those who find them troublesome can leave them on one side, without grudging them to the earnest student, who finds them not only illuminat- ive, but absolutely necessary to any clear understanding of the Mysteries of Life and Man. The word Body means a vehicle of con- sciousness, or an instrument of conscious- ness; that in which consciousness is carried about, as in a vehicle, or which conscious- ness uses to contact the external world, as a mechanic uses an instrument. Or, we may lSee Ante, pp. 83, 98, 99. 233 Esoteric Christianity liken it to a vessel, in which consciousness is held, as a jar holds liquid. It is a form used by a life, and we know nothing of con- sciousness save as connected with such forms. The form may be of rarest, sub- tlest, materials, may be so diaphanous that we are only conscious of the indwelling life; still it is there, and it is composed of Matter. It may be so dense, that it hides the indwell- ing life, and we are conscious only of the form; still the life is there, and it is com- posed of the opposite of Matter—Spirit. The student must study and re-study this fundamental fact—the duality of all mani- fested existence, the inseparable co-existence of Spirit and Matter in a grain of dust, in the Logos, the God manifested. The idea must become part of him; else must he give up the study of the Lesser Mysteries. The Christ, as God and Man, only shows out on the kosmic scale the same fact of duality that is repeated everywhere in nature. On that original duality everything in the uni- verse is formed. Man has a “natural body,” and this is made up of four different and separable per- 234 Resurrection and Ascension tions, and is subject to death. Two of these are composed of physical matter, and are never completely separated from each other until death, though a partial separa- tion may be caused by anaesthetics, or by disease. These two may be classed together as the Physical Body. In this the man carries on his conscious activities while he is awake; speaking technically, it is his vehicle of consciousness in the physical world. The third portion is the Desire Body, so called because man’s feeling and passional nature finds in this its special vehicle. In sleep the man leaves the physical body, and carries on his conscious activities in this, which functions in the invisible world clos- est to our visible earth. It is therefore his vehicle of consciousness in the lowest of the super-physical worlds, which is also the first world into which men pass at death. The fourth portion is the Mental Body, so called because man’s intellectual nature, so far as it deals with the concrete, functions in this. It is his vehicle of consciousness in the second of the super-physical worlds, which is also the second, or lower heavenly 235 Esoteric Christianity world, into which men pass after death, when freed from the world alluded to in the preceding paragraph. These four portions of his encircling form, made up of the dual physical body, the de- sire body, and the mental body, form the natural body of which S. Paul speaks. This scientific analysis has fallen out of the ordinary Christian teaching, which is vague and confused on this matter. It is not that the churches have never possessed it; on the contrary, this knowledge of the con- stitution of man formed part of the teach- ings in the Lesser Mysteries; the simple division into Spirit, Soul, and Body was exoteric, the first rough and ready division given as a foundation. The subdivision as regards the “Body ” was made in the course of later instruction, as a preliminary to the training by which the instructor enabled his pupil to separate one vehicle from another, and to use each as a vehicle of consciousness in its appropriate region. This conception should be readily enough grasped. If a man wants to travel on the solid earth, he uses as his vehicle a carriage 236 Resurrection and Ascension or a train. If he wants to travel on the liquid seas, he changes his vehicle, and takes a. ship. If he wants to travel in the air, he changes his vehicle again and uses a balloon. He is the same man throughout, but he is using three different vehicles, ac- cording to the kind of matter he wants to travel in. The analogy is rough and inade- quate, but it is not misleading. When a man is busy in the physical world, his vehi- cle is the physical body, and his conscious- ness works in and through that body. When he passes into the world beyond the physical, in sleep and at death, his vehicle is the desire body, and he may learn to use this consciously, as he uses the physical con- sciously. He already uses it unconsciously every day of his life when he is feeling and desiring, as well as every night of his life. When he goes on into the heavenly world after death, his vehicle is the mental body, and this also he is daily using, when he is thinking, and there would be no thought in the brain were there none in the mental body. Man has further “a spiritual body.” This 237 Esoteric Christianity is made up of three separable portions, each portion belonging to one of, and separating off, the three Persons in the Trinity of the human Spirit. S. Paul speaks of being “caught up to the third heaven,” and of there hearing “unspeakable words which it is not lawful for a man to utter.”’ These different regions of the invisible supernal worlds are known to Initiates, and they are well aware that those who pass beyond the first heaven need the truly spiritual body as their vehicle, and that according to the de- velopment of its three divisions is the heaven into which they can penetrate. The lowest of these three divisions is usually called the Causal Body, for a reason that will be only fully assimilable by those who have studied the teaching of Re- incarnation—taught in the Early Church— and who understand that human evolution needs very many successive lives on earth, ere the germinal soul of the savage can be- come the perfected soul of the Christ, and then, becoming perfect as the Father in ‘2 Cor. xii. 2, 4. 238 Resurrection and Ascension Heaven,1 can realise the union of the Son with the Father.2 It is a body that lasts from life to life, and in it all memory of the past is stored. From it come forth the causes that build up the lower bodies. It is the receptacle of human experience, the treasure-house in which all we gather in our lives is stored up, the seat of Conscience, the wielder of the Will. The second of the three divisions of the spiritual body is spoken of by S. Paul in the significant words: “ We have a building of God, an house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens.” 3 That is the Bliss Body, the glorified body of the Christ, “the Resurrec- tion Body.” It is not a body which is “made with hands,” by the working of con- sciousness in the lower vehicles; it is not formed by experience, not builded out of the materials gathered by man in his long pilgrimage. It is a body which belongs to the Christ-life, the life of Initiation; to the divine unfoldment in man; it is builded of God, by the activity of the Spirit, and grows 18. Matt. v. 48. 98. John xvii. 22, 23. 32 Cor. v. 1. 239 Esoteric Christianity during the whole life or lives of the Initiate, only reaching its perfection at “the Resur- rection.” The third division of the spiritual body is the fine film of subtle matter that separates off the individual Spirit as 3. Being, and yet permits the interpenetration of all by all, and is thus the expression of the funda- mental unity. In the day when the Son Himself shall “be subject unto Him that put all things under Him, that God may be all in all,”1 this film will be transcended, but for us it remains the highest division of the spiritual body, in which we ascend to the Father, and are united with Him. Christianity has always recognised the ex- istence of three worlds, or regions, through which a man passes; first, the physical world; secondly, an intermediate state into which he passes at death; thirdly, the heavenly world. These three worlds are universally believed in by educated Christ- ians; only the uninstructed imagine that a man passes from his deathbed into the final 11 Cor. xv. 28. 240 Resurrection and Ascension state of beatitude. But there is some dif- ference of opinion as to the nature of the intermediate world. The Roman Catholic names it Purgatory, and believes that every soul passes into it, save that of the Saint, the man who has reached perfection, or that of a. man Who has died in “mortal sin.” The great mass of humanity pass into a purifying region, wherein a man remains for a period varying in length according to the sins he has committed, only passing out of it into the heavenly world when he has become pure. The various communities that are called Protestant vary in their teachings as to details, and mostly repudiate the idea of post mortem purification; but they agree broadly that there is an inter- mediate state, sometimes spoken of as “Paradise” or as a “waiting period.” The heavenly world is almost universally, in modern Christendom, regarded as a final state, with no very definite or general idea as to its nature, or as to the progress or stationary condition of those attaining to it. In early Christianity this heaven was considered to be, as it really is, a stage in 16 241 Esoteric Christianity the progress of the soul, re-incarnation in one form or another, the pre—existence of the soul, being then very generally taught. The result was, of course, that the heavenly state was a temporary condition, though often a very prolonged one, lasting for “an age ”—as stated in the Greek of the New Testament, the age being ended by the return of the man for the next stage of his continuing life and progress—and not “everlasting,” as in the mistranslation of the English authorised version.‘ In order to complete the outline necessary for the understanding of the Resurrection and Ascension, we must see how these vari- ous bodies are developed in the higher evo- lution. The physical body is in a constant state of flux, its minute particles being continually renewed, so that it is ever building; and as ‘This mistranslation was a very natural one, as the translation was made in the seventeenth century, and all idea of the pre-existence of the soul and of its evolution had long faded out of Christendom, save in the teachings of a few sects regarded as heretical and persecuted by the Roman Catholic Church. 242 Resurrection and Ascension it is composed of the food we eat, the liquids we drink, the air we breathe, and particles drawn from our physical surroundings, both people and things, we can steadily purify it, by choosing its materials well, and thus make it an ever purer vehicle through which to act, receptive of subtler vibrations, re- sponsive to purer desires, to nobler and more elevated thoughts. For this reason all who aspired to attain to the Mysteries were subjected to rules of diet, ablution, &c., and were desired to be very careful as to the people with whom they associated, and the places to. which they went. The desire body also changes, in similar fashion, but the materials for it are expelled and drawn in by the play of the desires, arising from the feelings, passions, and emo- tions. If these are coarse, the materials built into the desire body are also coarse, while as these are purified, the desire body grows subtle and becomes very sensitive to the higher influences. In proportion as a man dominates his lower nature, and be- comes unselfish in his wishes, feelings, and emotions, as he makes his love for those 243 Esoteric Christianity around him less selfish and grasping, he is purifying this higher vehicle of conscious- ness; the result is that when out of the body in sleep he has higher, purer, and more instructive experiences, and when he leaves the physical body at death, he passes swiftly through the intermediate state, the desire body disintegrating with great rapid- ity, and not delaying him in his onward journey. The mental body is similarly being built now, in this case by thoughts. It will be the vehicle of consciousness in the heavenly world, but is being built now by aspirations, by imagination, reason, judgment, artistic faculties, by the use of all the mental pow- ers. Such as the man makes it, so must he wear it, and the length and richness of his heavenly state depend on the kind of mental body he has built during his life on earth. As a man enters the higher evolution, this body comes into independent activity on this side of death, and he gradually becomes con- scious of his heavenly life, even amid the whirl of mundane existence. Then he be- comes “the Son of man which is in 244 Resurrection and Ascension heaven,” 1 who can speak with the authority of knowledge on heavenly things. When the man begins to live the life of the Son, having passed on to the Path of Holiness, he lives in heaven while remaining on earth, coming into conscious possession and use of this heavenly body. And inasmuch as heaven is not far away from us, but sur- rounds us on every side, and we are only shut out from it by our incapacity to feel its vibrations, not by their absence; inasmuch as those vibrations are playing upon us at every moment of our lives; all that is needed. to be in Heaven is to become con- scious of those vibrations. We become con- scious of them with the vitalising, the or- ganising, the evolution of this heavenly body, which, being builded out of the heavenly materials, answers to the vibra- tions of the matter of the heavenly world. Hence the “Son of man” is ever in heaven. But we know that the “Son of man” is a term applied to the Initiate, not to the Christ risen and glorified but to the Son while he is yet “being made perfect.” ’ 1 S. John iii. 13. 2Heb. v. 9. 245 Esoteric Christianity During the stages of evolution that lead up to and include the Probationary Path, the first division of the spiritual body—the Causal Body—develops rapidly, and ena- bles the man, after death, to rise into the second heaven. After the Second Birth, the birth of the Christ in man, begins the building of the Bliss Body “in the heav- ens.” This is the body of the Christ, developing during the days of His service on earth, and, as it develops, the conscious- ness of the “Son of God” becomes more and more marked, and the coming union with the Father illuminates the unfolding Spirit. In the Christian Mysteries—as in the ancient Egyptian, Chaldaean, and others— there was an outer symbolism which ex- pressed the stages through which the man was passing. He was brought into the chamber of Initiation, and was stretched on the ground with his arms extended, some- times on a cross of wood, sometimes merely on the stone floor, in the posture of a cru- cified man. He was then touched with the thyrsus on the heart—the “spear” of 246 Resurrection and Ascension the crucifixion—and, leaving the body, he passed into the worlds beyond, the body fall- ing into a deep trance, the death of the cru- cified. The body was placed in a sarcopha- gus of stone, and there left, carefully guarded. Meanwhile the man himself was treading first the strange obscure regions called “the heart of the earth,” and there- after the heavenly mount, where he put on the perfected bliss body, now fully organised as a vehicle of consciousness. In that he returned to the body of flesh, to re-animate it. The cross bearing that body, or the en- tranced and rigid body, if no cross had been used, was lifted out of the sarcophagus and placed on a sloping surface, facing the east, ready for the rising of the sun on the third day. At the moment that the rays of the sun touched the face, the Christ, the per- fected Initiate or Master, re-entered the body, glorifying it by the bliss body He was wearing, changing the body of flesh by con- tact with the body of bliss, giving it new properties, new powers, new capacities, transmutin git into His own likeness. That was the Resurrection of the Christ, and 247 Esoteric Christianity thereafter the body of flesh itself was changed, and took on a new nature. This is why the sun has ever been taken as the symbol of the rising Christ, and why, in Easter hymns, there is constant reference to the rising of the Sun of Righteousness. So also is it written of the triumphant Christ: “I am He that liveth and was dead; and behold, I am alive for evermore, Amen; and have the keys of hell and of death.”1 All the powers of the lower worlds have been taken under the dominion of the Son, who has triumphed gloriously; over Him death no more has power, “He holdeth life and death in His strong band.” 2 He is the risen Christ, the Christ triumphant. The Ascension of the Christ was the Mys- tery of the third part of the spiritual body, the putting on of the Vesture of Glory, pre- paratory to the union of the Son with the Father, of man with God, when the Spirit re-entered the glory it had “before the world was.”8 Then the triple Spirit be- chv. i. 18. ‘-’H. P. Blavatsky. T he Voice of the Silence, p. 90, 5th Edition. 38. John xvii. 5. 248 Resurrection and Ascension comes one, knows itself eternal, and the Hidden God is found. That is imaged in the doctrine of the Ascension, so far as the individual is concerned. The Ascension for humanity is when the whole race has attained the Christ condition, the state of the Son, and that Son becomes one with the Father, and God is all in all. That is the goal, prefigured in the triumph of the Initiate, but reached only when the human race is perfected, and when “the great orphan Humanity” is no longer an orphan, but consciously recognises itself as the Son of God. Thus studying the doctrines of the Atone- ment, the Resurrection, and the Ascension, we reach the truths unfolded concerning them in the Lesser Mysteries, and we begin to understand the full truth of the apostolic teaching that Christ was not a unique per- sonality, but “the first fruits of them that slept,” 1 and that every man was to become a Christ. Not then was the Christ regarded as an external Saviour, by whose imputed righteousness men were to be saved from 11 Cor. xv. 20. 249 Esoteric Christianity divine wrath. There was current in the Church the glorious and inspiring teaching that He was but the first fruits of human- ity, the model that every man should repro- duce in himself, the life that all should share. The Initiates have ever been re- garded as these first fruits, the promise of a race made perfect. To the early Christian, Christ was the living symbol of his own di- vinity, the glorious fruit of the seed he bore in his own heart. Not to be saved by an external Christ, but to be glorified into an inner Christ, was the teaching of esoteric Christianity, of the Lesser Mysteries. The stage of discipleship was to pass into that of Sonship. The life of the Son was to be lived among men till it was closed by the Resurrection, and the glorified Christ be- came one of the perfected Saviours of the world. How far greater a Gospel than the one of modern days! Placed beside that grandiose ideal of esoteric Christianity, the exoteric teaching of the churches seems narrow and poor indeed. 250 CHAPTER IX THE TRINITY ALL fruitful study of the Divine Existence must start from the affirmation that it is One. All the Sages have thus proclaimed It; every religion has thus affirmed It; every philosophy othus posits It——“One only Without. a second.”1 “Hear, O Israel!” cried Moses, “The Lord our God is one Lord.”a “To us there is but one God,”3 declares S. Paul. “There is no God but God,” affirms the founder of Islam, and makes the phrase the symbol of his faith. One Existence unbounded, known in Its ful- ness only to Itself—the word It seems more reverent and inclusive than He, and is therefore used. That is the Eternal Dark- ness, out of which is born the Light. 1 Ohhdndogyopam'fihat, VI. ii. 1. 5'Deut. vi. 4. 31 Cor. viii. 6. 251 Esoteric Christianity But as the Manifested God, the One appears as Three. A Trinity of Divine Beings, One as God, Three as manifested Powers. This also has ever been declared, and the truth is so vital in its relation to man and his evolution that it is one which ever forms an essential part of the Lesser Mysteries. Among the Hebrews, in consequence of their anthropomorphising tendencies, the doctrine was kept secret, but the Rabbis studied and worshipped the Ancient of Days, from whom came forth the Wisdom, from whom the Understanding—Kether, Ohoch- mah, Binah, these formed the Supreme Trinity, the shining forth in time of the One beyond time. The Book of the Wis- dom of Solomon refers to this teaching, making Wisdom a Being. “According to Maurice, ‘ The first Sephira, who is denomin- ated Kether the Crown, Kadmon the pure Light, and En Soph the Infinite,1 is the om- nipotent Father of the universe. . . . The 1An error: En. or Ain, Soph is not one of the Trinity, but the One Existence, manifested in the Three; nor is Kadmon, or Adam Kadmon, one Sephira, but their totality. 252 The Trinity second is the Chochmah, whom we have sufficiently proved, both from sacred and Rabbinical writings, to be the creative Wis- dom. The third is the Binah, or heavenly Intelligence, whence the Egyptians had their Cneph, and Plato his Nous Demi- urgos. He is the Holy Spirit who . . . per- vades, animates, and governs this boundless universe.’ ” 1 The bearing of this doctrine on Christian teaching is indicated by Dean Milman in his History of Christianity. He says: “This Being [the Word or the Wisdom] was more or less distinctly impersonated, accord— ing to the more popular or more philosophic, the more material or the more abstract, notions of the age or people. This was the doctrine from the Ganges, or even the shores of the Yellow Sea, to the Ilissus; it was the fundamental principle of the Indian religion and the Indian philosophy; it was the basis of Zoroastrianism; it was pure Platonism; it was the Platonic Judaism of the Alexandrian school. Many fine pass- 1Quoted in Williamson’s The Great Law, pp. 201, 202. 253 Esoteric Christianity ages might be quoted from Philo on the impossibility that the first self-existing Be- ing should become cognisable to the sense of man; and even in Palestine, no doubt, John the Baptist and our Lord Himself spoke no new doctrine, but rather the com- mon sentiment of the more enlightened, when they declared ‘ that no man had seen God at any time.’ In conformity with this principle the Jews, in the interpretation of the older Scriptures, instead of direct and sensible communication from the one great Deity, had interposed either one or more in- termediate beings as the channels of com- munication. According to one accredited tradition alluded to by S. Stephen, the law was delivered ‘ by the disposition of angels ’; according to another this office was de- legated to a single angel, sometimes called the Angel of the Law (see Gal. iii. 19); at others the Metatron. But the more ordin- ary representative, as it were, of God, to the sense and mind of man, was the Memra, or the Divine Word; and it is remarkable that the same appellation is found in the Indian, the Persian, the Platonic, and the 254 The Trinity Alexandrian systems. By the Targumists, the earliest Jewish commentators on the Scriptures, this term had been already ap- plied to the Messiah; nor is it necessary to observe the manner in which it has been sanctified by its introduction into the Christ- ian scheme.” 1 As above said by the learned Dean, the idea of the Word, the Logos, was universal, and it formed part of the idea of a Trinity. Among the Hindus, the philosophers speak of the manifested Brahman as Sat-Chit- Ananda, Existence, Intelligence, and Bliss. Popularly, the Manifested God is a Trinity; Shiva, the Beginning and the End; Vishnu, the Preserver; Brahma, the Creator of the Universe. The Zoroastrian faith presents a similar Trinity; Ahuramazdao, the Great One, the First; then “the twins,” the dual Second Person—for the Second Person in a Trinity is ever dual, deteriorated in modern days into an opposing God and Devil—and the Universal Wisdom, Armaiti. In Northern Buddhism we find Amitabha, the 1 H. H. Milman. The History qf Christianity, 1867, pp. 70-72. 255 Esoteric Christianity boundless Light; Avalokiteshvara, the source of incarnations, and the Universal Mind, Mandjusri. In Southern Buddhism the idea of God has faded away, but with significant tenacity the triplicity re-appears as that in which the Southern Buddhist takes his refuge—the Buddha, the Dharma (the Doctrine), the Sangha (the Order). But the Buddha Himself is sometimes wor- shipped as 3 Trinity; on a stone in Buddha Gaya is inscribed a salutation to Him as an incarnation of the Eternal One, and it is said: “Om! Thou art Brahma, Vishnu, and Mahesha (Shiva). . . . I adore Thee, who art celebrated by a thousand names and under various forms, in the shape of Buddha, the God of Mercy.” 1 In extinct religions the same idea of 3 Trinity is found. In Egypt it dominated all religious worship. “We have a hieoro- glyphical inscription in the British Museum as early as the reign of Senechus of the eighth century before the Christian era, showing that the doctrine of Trinity in ‘Asz'atz'c Researches, i. 285. 256 The Trinity Unity already formed part of their relig- ion.”ll This'is true of a far earlier date. Ra, Osiris, and Horus formed one widely worshipped Trinity; Osiris, Isis, and Horus were worshipped at Abydos; other names are given in different cities, and the triangle is the frequently used symbol of the Triune God. The idea which underlay these Trin- ities, however named, is shown in a passage quoted from Marutho, in which an oracle, rebuking the pride of Alexander the Great, speaks of: “First God, then the Word, and with Them the Spirit.” 2 In Ohaldaea, Anu, Ea, and Bel were the Supreme Trinity, Anu being the Origin of all, Ea the Wisdom, and Bel the creative Spirit. Of China Williamson remarks: “In ancient China the emperors used to sac- rifice every third year to ‘ Him who is one and three.’ There was a Chinese saying, ‘F0 is one person but has three forms.’ . . . In the lofty philosophical system known in China as Taoism, a trinity also figures: lS. Sharpe. Egyptian Mythology and Egyptian Christ- ology, p. 14. 9 See Williamson’s The Great Law, p. 196. 17 257 Esoteric Christianity r— ‘ Eternal Reason produced One, One pro- duced Two, Two produced Three, and Three produced all things,’ which, as Le Oompte goes on to say, ‘ seems to show as if they had some knowledge of the Trinity.’ ” 1 In the Christian doctrine of the Trinity we find a complete agreement with other faiths as to the functions of the three Divine Persons, the word Person coming from per- sona, a mask, that which covers something, the mask of the One Existence, Its Self- revelation under a form. The Father is the Origin and End of all; the Son is dual in His nature, and is the Word, or the Wis- dom; the Holy Spirit is the creative Intelli- gence, that brooding over the chaos of prim- eval matter organises it into the materials out of which forms can be constructed. It is this identity of functions under so many varying names which shows that we have here not a mere outer likeness, but an expression of an inner truth. There is something of which this triplicity is a mani- festation, something that can be traced in lLoo. Cit, pp. 208, 209. 258 The Trinity nature and in evolution, and which, be- ing recognised, will render intelligible the growth of man, the stages of his evolving life. Further, we find that in the universal language of symbolism the Persons are dis- tin guished by certain emblems, and may be recognised by these under diversity of forms and names. But there is one other point that must be remembered ere we leave the exoteric state- ment of the Trinity—that in connection with all these Trinities there is a fourth fundamental manifestation, the Power of the God, and this has always a feminine form. In Hinduism each Person in the Trinity has His manifested-Power, the One and these six aspects making up the sacred Seven. With many of the Trinities one feminine form appears, then ever specially connected with the Second Person, and then there is the sacred Quaternary. Let us now see the inner truth. The One becomes manifest as the First Being, the Self-Existent Lord, the Root of all, the Supreme Father; the word Will, or Power, seems best to express this primary 259 Esoteric Christianity Self-revealing, since until there is Will to manifest there can be no manifestation, and until there is Will manifested, impulse is lacking for further unfoldment. The uni- verse may be said to be rooted in the divine Will. Then follows the second aspect of the One—Wisdom; Power is guided by Wis- dom, and therefore it is written that “with- out Him was not anything made that is made;”1 Wisdom is dual in its nature, as will presently be seen. When the aspects of Will and Wisdom are revealed, a third aspect must follow to make them effective —Creative Intelligence, the divine mind in Action. A Jewish prophet writes: “He hath made the earth by His Power, He hath established the world by His Wisdom; and hath stretched out the heaven by His Un- derstanding,”2 the reference to the three functions being very clear.“ These Three are inseparable, indivisible, three aspects of One. Their functions may be thought of separately, for the sake of clearness, but cannot be disjoined. Each is necessary to 1S. John i. 3. “Jer. Ii. 15. 3See Ante, pp. 178, 179. 260 The Trinity each, and each is present in each. In the First Being, Will, Power, is seen as pre- dominant, as characteristic, but Wisdom and Creative Action are also present; in the Second Being, Wisdom is seen as predomi— nant, but Power and Creative Action are none the less inherent in Him; in the Third Being, Creative Action is seen as predomi- nant, but Power and Wisdom are ever also to be seen. And though the words First, Second, Third are used, because the Beings are thus manifested in Time, in the order of Self-unfolding, yet in Eternity they are known as interdependent and co-equal, “None is greater or less than Another.” 1 This Trinity is the divine Self, the divine Spirit, the Manifested God, He that “was and is and is to come,”2 and He is the root of the fundamental triplicity in life, in con- sciousness. But we saw that there was a Fourth Per- son, or in some religions a second Trinity, feminine, the Mother. This is That which makes manifestation possible, That which lAthanasian Creed. QRev. iv. 8. 261 Esoteric Christianity eternally in the One is the root of limitation and division, and which, when manifested, is called Matter. This is the divine Not- Self, the divine Matter, the manifested N at- ure. Regarded as One, She is the Fourth, making possible the activity of the Three, the Field of Their operations by virtue of Her infinite divisibility, at once the “Hand- maid of the Lord,”1 and also His Mother, yielding of Her substance to form His Body, the universe, when overshadowed by His power.2 Regarded carefully She is seen to be triple also, existing in three inseparable aspects, without which She could not be. These are Stability—Inertia or Resistance —Motion, and Rhythm; the fundamental or essential qualities of Matter, these are called. They alone render Spirit effective, and have therefore been regarded as the manifested Powers of the Trinity. Stability or Inertia affords a basis, the fulcrum for the lever; Motion is then rendered manifest, but could make only chaos; then Rhythm is imposed, and there is Matter in vibration, ‘8. Luke i. 38. 9Ibz'd., 35. 262 The Trinity capable of being shaped and moulded. When the three qualities are in equilibrium, there is the One, the Virgin Matter, unproductive. When the power of the Highest overshad- ows Her, and the breath of the Spirit comes upon Her, the qualities are thrown out of equilibrium, and She becomes the divine Mother of the worlds. The first interaction is between Her and the Third Person of the Trinity; by His ac- tion She becomes capable of giving birth to form. Then is revealed the Second Person, who clothes Himself in the material thus provided, and thus becomes the Mediator, linking in His own Person Spirit and mat- ter, the Archetype of all forms. Only through Him does the First'Person become revealed, as the Father of all Spirits. It is now possible to see why the Second Person of the Trinity of Spirit is ever dual; He is the One who clothes Himself in Mat- ter, in whom the twin-halves of Deity ap- pear in union, not as one. Hence also is He Wisdom; for Wisdom on the side of Spirit is the Pure Reason that knows itself as the One Self and knows all things in that Self, 263 . Esoteric Christianity and on the side of Matter it is Love, draw- ing the infinite diversity of forms together, and making each form a unit, not a mere heap of particles—the principle of attraction which holds the worlds and all in them in a perfect order and balance. This is the Wis- dom which is spoken of as “mightily and sweetly ordering all things,”1 which sus- tains and preserves the universe. In the world-symbols, found in every relig- ion, the Point—that which has position only—has been taken as a symbol of the First Person in the Trinity. On this symbol S. Clement of Alexandria remarks that we abstract from a body its properties, then depth, then breadth, then length; “the point which remains is a unit, so to speak, having position; from which if we abstract position, there is the conception of unity.”2 He shines out, as it were, from the infinite Darkness, a Point of Light, the centre of a. future universe, a Unit, in whom all exists inseparate; the matter which is to form the IBook of Wisdom, viii. 1. ”Vol. IV. Ante-Nicene Library. 8. Clement of Alex- andria. Stromata, bk. V., ch. ii. 264 The Trinity universe, the field of His work, is marked out by the backward and forward vibration of the Point in every direction, a vast sphere, limited by His Will, His Power. This is the making of “the earth by His Power,” spoken of by J eremiah.1 Thus the full symbol is a Point within a sphere, repre- sented usually as a Point within a circle. The Second Person is represented by a Line, a diameter of this circle, a single complete vibration of the Point, and this Line is equally in every direction within the sphere; this Line dividing the circle in twain signi- fies also His duality, that in Him Matter and Spirit—a unity in the First Person—are visibly two, though in union. The Third Person is represented by a Cross formed by two diameters at right angles to each other Within the circle, the second line of the Cross separating the upper part of the circle from the lower. This is the Greek Cross.“ When the Trinity is represented as a Unity, the Triangle is used, either inscribed Within a circle, or free. The universe is lSee Ante, p. 260. 98cc Ante, p. 205. 265 Esoteric Christianity symbolised by two triangles interlaced, the Trinity of Spirit with the apex of the trian- gle upward, the Trinity of Matter with the apex of the triangle downward, and if col- ours are used, the first is white, yellow, golden or flame-coloured, and the second black, or some dark shade. The kosmic process can now be readily followed. The One has become Two, and the Two Three, and the Trinity is revealed. The Matter of the universe is marked out and awaits the action of Spirit. This is the “in the beginning” of Genesis, when “God created the heaven and the earth,” 1 a state- ment further elucidated by the repeated phrases that He “laid the foundations of the earth; ” ’ we have here the marking out of the material, but a mere chaos, “without form and void.” 3 On this begins the action of the Creative Intelligence, the Holy Spirit, who “moved upon the face of the waters,”4 the vast ocean of matter. Thus His was the first lGen. i. 1. ”Job xxxviii. 4; Zech. xii. 1; &c. 3Gen. i. 2. 4Ibz'd. 266 The Trinity activity, though He was the Third Person— a point of great importance. In the Mysteries this work was shown in its detail as the preparation of the matter of the universe, the formation of atoms, the drawing of these together into aggregates, and the grouping of these together into elements, and of these again into gaseous, liquid, and solid compounds. This work in- cludes not only the kind of matter called physical, but also all the subtle states of matter in the invisible worlds. He further as the “Spirit of Understanding ” conceived the forms into which the prepared matter should be shaped, not building the forms, but by the action of the Creative Intelli- gence producing the Ideas of them, the heavenly prototypes, as they are often called. This is the work referred to when it is written, He “stretched out the heaven by His Understanding.” 1 The work of the Second Person follows that of the Third. He by virtue of His Wisdom “established the world,”2 building lSee Ante, p. 260. 2Ibz'd. 267 Esoteric Christianity all globes and all things upon them, “all things were made by Him.”1 He is the organising Life of the worlds, and all be- ings are rooted in Him.2 The life of the Son thus manifested in the matter prepared by the Holy Spirit—again the great “ Myth ” of the Incarnation—is the life that builds up, preserves, and maintains all forms, for He is the Love, the attracting power, that gives cohesion to forms, enabling them to grow without falling apart, the Preserver, the Supporter, the Saviour. That is why all must be subject to the Son,“ all must be gathered up in Him, and why “no man cometh unto the Father but by” Him. ‘ For the work of the First Person follows that of the Second, as that of the Second follows that of the Third. He is spoken of as “the Father of Spirits,” ° the “ God of the Spirits of all flesh,” ° and His is the gift of the divine Spirit, the true Self in man. The human Spirit is the outpoured divine Life ‘S. John i. 3. ”Bhagarad Gétd, ix. 4. 31 Cor. xv. 27, 28. ‘S. John xiv. 6. See also the further meaning of this text on p. 270. 5Heb. xii. 9. 6Numb. xvi. 22. 268 The Trinity of the Father, poured into the vessel pre- pared by the Son, out of the materials vivi- fied by the Spirit. And this Spirit in man, being from the Father—from whom came forth the Son and the Holy Spirit—is a Unity like Himself, with the three aspects in One, and man is thus truly made “in our image, after our likeness,”l and is able to become “perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect.” ’ Such is the kosmic process, and in human evolution it is repeated; “as above, so be- low.” The Trinity of the Spirit in man, being in the divine likeness, must show out the di- vine characteristics, and thus we find in him Power, which, whether in its higher form of Will or its lower form of Desire, gives the impulse to his evolution. We find also in him Wisdom, the Pure Reason, which has Love as its expression in the world of forms, and lastly Intelligence, or Mind, the active shaping energy. And in man also we find that the manifestation of lGren. i. 26. ‘2 S. Matt. v. 48. 269 ' Esoteric Christianity these in his evolution is from the third to the second, and from the second to the first. The mass of humanity is unfolding the mind, evolving the intelligence, and we can see its separative action everywhere, isolat- ing, as it were, the human atoms and de- veloping each severally, so that they may be fit materials for building up a divine Hu- manity. To this point only has the race ar- rived, and here it is still working. As we study a small minority of our race, we see that the second aspect of the divine Spirit in man is appearing, and we speak of it in Christendom as the Christ in man. Its evolution lies, as we have seen, beyond the first of the Great Initiations, and Wisdom and Love are the marks of the Initiate, shining out more and more as he develops this aspect of the Spirit. Here again is it true that “no man cometh to the Father but by Me,” for only when the life of the Son is touching on completion can He pray: “Now, 0 Father, glorify Thou Me with Thine own Self, with the glory which I had with Thee before the world was.”1 Then 1S. John xvii. 5. 270 The Trinity the Son ascends to the Father and becomes one with Him in the divine glory; He mani- fests self-existence, the existence inherent in his divine nature, unfolded from seed to flower, for “as the Father hath life in Him- self, so hath He given to the Son to have life in Himself.“ He becomes a living self-conscious Centre in the Life of God, a Centre able to exist as such, no longer bound by the limitations of his earlier life, expanding to divine consciousness, while keeping the identity of his life unshaken, a living, fiery Centre in the divine Flame. In this evolution now lies the possibility of divine Incarnations in the future, as this evolution in the past has rendered possi- ble divine Incarnations in our own world. These living Centres do not lose Their iden- tity, nor the memory of Their past, of aught that They have experienced in the long climb upwards; and such a Self-con- scious Being can come forth from the Bosom of the Father, and reveal Himself for the helping of the world. He has main- tained the union in Himself of Spirit and ‘S. John v. 26. 271 Esoteric Christianity Matter, the duality of the Second Person— all divine Incarnations in all religions are therefore connected with the Second Person in the Trinity—and hence can readily re- clothe Himself for physical manifestation, and again become Man. This nature of the Mediator He has retained, and is thus a link between the celestial and terrestrial Trini- ties, “God with us”1 He has ever been called. Such 3 Being, the glorious fruit of a past universe, can come into the present world with all the perfection of His divine Wis- dom and Love, with all the memory of His past, able by virtue of that memory to be the perfect Helper of every living Being, knowing every stage because He has lived it, able to help at every point because He has experienced all. “In that He Himself hath sufi'ered being tempted, He is able to succour them that are tempted.” ’ It is in the humanity behind Him that lies this possibility of divine Incarnation; He comes down, having climbed up, in order lS. Matt. i. 22. ’Heb. ii. 18. 272 The Trinity to help others to climb the ladder. And as we understand these truths, and something of the meaning of the Trinity, above and below, what was once a mere hard unintel- ligible dogma becomes a living and vivi- fying truth. Only by the existence of the Trinity in man is human evolution intelligi- ble, and we see how man evolves the life of the intellect, and then the life of the Christ. On that fact mysticism is based, and our sure hope that we shall know God. Thus have the Sages taught, and as we tread the Path they show, we find that their testi- mony is true. 18 273 CHAPTER X PRAYER ' WHAT is sometimes called “the modern spirit” is exceedingly antagonistic to prayer, failing to see any causal nexus between the uttering of a petition and the happening of an event, whereas the religious spirit is as strongly attached to it, and finds its very life in prayer. Yet even the religious man sometimes feels uneasy as to the rationale of prayer; is he teaching the All-wise, is he urging beneficence on the All-Good, is he altering the will of Him in “whom is no variableness, neither shadow of turning”? ’ Yet he finds in his own experience and in that of others “answers to prayer,” a defin- ite sequence of a request and a fulfilment. Many of these do not refer to subjective 1Much of this chapter has already appeared in an earlier work by the author, entitled, Some Problems of sze. ’8. James i. 17, 274 Prayer experiences, but to hard facts of the so- called objective world. A man has prayed for money, and the post has brought him the required amount; a woman has prayed for food, and food has been brought to her door. In connection with charitable under- takings, especially, there is plenty of evi- dence of help prayed for in urgent need, and of speedy and liberal response. On the other hand, there is also plenty of evidence of prayers left unanswered; of the hungry starving to death, of the child snatched from its mother’s arms by disease, despite the most passionate appeals to God. Any true view of prayer must take into account all these facts. Nor is this all. There are many facts in this experience which are strange and puzzling. A prayer that perhaps is trivial meets with an answer, while another on an important matter fails; a passing trouble is relieved, while a prayer poured out to save a passionately beloved life finds no response. It seems almost impossible for the ordinary student to discover the law according to which a prayer is or is not productive. 275 Esoteric Christianity The first thing necessary in seeking to un- derstand this law is to analyse prayer itself, for the word is used to cover various activi- ties of the consciousness, and prayers cannot be dealt with as though they formed a sim- ple whole. There are prayers which are petitions for definite worldly advantages, for the supply of physical necessities—pray- ers for food, clothing, money, employment, success in business, recovery from illness, &c. These may be grouped together as Class A. Then we have prayers for help in moral and intellectual difficulties and for spiritual growth—for the overcoming of temptations, for strength, for insight, for enlightenment. These may be grouped as Class B. Lastly, there are the prayers that ask for nothing, that consist in meditation on and adoration of the divine Perfection, in intense aspiration for union with God— the ecstasy of the mystic, the meditation of the sage, the soaring rapture of the saint. This is the true “communion between the Divine and the human,” when the man pours himself out in love and veneration for THAT which is inherently attractive, that 276 Prayer compels the love of the heart. These we will call Class C. In the invisible worlds there exist many kinds of Intelligences, which come into re- lationship with man, a veritable Jacob’s lad- der, on which the Angels of God ascend and descend, and above which stands the Lord Himself.l Some of these Intelligences are mighty spiritual Powers, others are exceed- ingly limited beings, inferior in conscious- ness to man. This occult side of Nature—- of which more will presently be said2 —is a fact, recognised by all religions. All the world is filled with living things, invisible to fleshly eyes. The invisible worlds inter- penetrate the visible, and crowds of intelli- gent beings throng round us on every side. Some of these are accessible to human re- quests, and others are amenable to the hu- man will. Christianity recognises the ex- istence of the higher classes of Intelligences under the general name of Angels, and teaches that they are “ministering spirits, sent forth to minister”;“ but what is their 1 Gen. xxviii. 12, 13. 9 See Chapter xii. 3Heb. i. 14. 277 J Esoteric Christianity ministry, what the nature of their work, what their relationship to human beings, all that was part of the instruction given in the Lesser Mysteries, as the actual communica- tion with them was enjoyed in the Greater; but in modern days these truths have sunk into the background, except the little that is taught in the Greek and Roman commun- ions. For the Protestant, “the ministry of angels” is little more than a phrase. In addition to all these, man is himself a con- stant creator of invisible beings, for the vi- brations of his thoughts and desires create forms of subtle matter the only life of which is the thought or the desire which ensouls them; he thus creates an army of invisible servants, who range through the invisible worlds seeking to do his will. Yet, again, there are in these worlds hu- man helpers, who work there in their subtle bodies while their physical bodies are sleep- ing, whose attentive ear may catch a cry for help. And to crown all, there is the ever-present, ever-conscious Life of God Himself, potent and responsive at every point of His realm, of Him without whose 278 Prayer knowledge not a sparrow falleth to the ground,1 not a dumb creature thrills in joy or pain, not a child laughs or sobs—that all-pervading, all-embracing, all-sustaining Life and Love, in which we live and move.2 As nought that can give pleasure or pain can touch the human body without the sens- ory nerves carrying the message of its impact to the brain-centres, and as there thrills down from those centres through the motor nerves the answer that welcomes or repels, so does every vibration in the uni- verse, which is His body, touch the con- sciousness of God, and draw thence respon- sive action. Nerve-cells, nerve-threads, and muscular fibres may be the agents of feeling and moving, but it is the man that feels and acts; so may myriads of Intelli- gences be the agents, but it is God who knows and answers. Nothing can be so small as not to afiect that delicate omni- present consciousness, nothing so vast as to transcend it. We are so limited that the very idea of such an all-embracing con- 1S). Matt. x. 29. ”Acts xvii. 28. 279 Esoteric Christianity sciousness staggers and confounds us; yet perhaps a gnat might be as hard bestead if he tried to measure the consciousness of Pythagoras. Professor Huxley, in a re— markable passage, has imagined the possi- bility of the existence of beings rising higher and higher in intelligence, the consciousness ever expanding, and the reaching of a stage as much above the human as the human is above that of the blackbeetle.1 That is not a flight of the scientific imagination, but a description of a fact. There is a Being Whose consciousness is present at every point of His universe, and therefore can be affect- ed from any point. That consciousness is not only vast in its field, but inconceivably acute, not diminished in delicate capacity to respond because it stretches its vast area in every direction, but is more responsive than a more limited consciousness, more perfect in understanding than the more restricted. So far from it being the case that the more exalted the Being the more difficult would it be to reach His consciousness, the very 1T. H. Huxley. Essays on some Controverted Questions, p. 36. 280 Prayer reverse is true. The more exalted the Be- ing, the more easily is His consciousness afiected. Now this all-pervading Life is every- where utilising as channels all the embodied lives to which He has given birth, and any one of them may be used as an agent of that all-conscious Will. In order that that Will may express itself in the outer world, a means of expression must be found, and these beings, in proportion to their receptiv- ity, offer the necessary channels, and be- come the intermediary workers between one point of the kosmos and another. They act as the motor nerves of His body, and bring about the required action. Let us now take the classes into which we have divided prayers, and see the meth- ods by which they will be answered. When a man utters a prayer of Class A there are several means by which his prayer may be answered. Such a man is simple in his nature, with a conception of God natu- ral, inevitable, at the stage of evolution in which he is; he regards Him as the supplier of his own needs, in close and immediate 281 Esoteric Christianity touch with his daily necessities, and he turns to Him for his daily bread as natu- rally as a child turns to his father or moth- er. Atypical instance of this is the case of George Muller, of Bristol, before he was known to the world as a philanthropist, when he was beginning his charitable work, and was without friends or money. He prayed for food for the children who had no. resource save his bounty, and money always came suflicient for the immediate needs. What had happened? His prayer was a. strong, energetic desire, and that desire creates a form, of which it is the life and directing energy. That vibrating, living creature has but one idea, the idea that en- souls it—help is wanted, food is wanted; and it ranges the subtle world, seeking. A charitable man desires to give help to the needy, is seeking opportunity to give. As the magnet to soft iron, so is such a person to the desire-form, and it is attracted to him. It rouses in his brain vibrations iden- tical with its own—George Miiller, his or- phanage, its needs—and he sees the outlet for his charitable impulse, draws a cheque, 282 Prayer and sends it. Quite naturally, George Miil- ler would say that God put it into the heart of such a one to give the needed help. In the deepest sense of the words that is true, since there is no life, no energy, in His uni- verse that does not come from God; but the intermediate agency, according to the divine laws, is the desire-form created by the prayer. The result could be obtained equally well by a deliberate exercise of the will, without any prayer, by a person who understood the mechanism concerned, and the way to put it in motion. Such a man would think clearly of what he needed, would draw to him the kind of subtle matter best suited to his purpose to clothe the thought, and by a deliberate exercise of his will would either send it to a definite person to represent his need, or to range his neighbourhood and be attracted by a charitably disposed person. There is here no prayer, but a conscious ex- ercise of will and knowledge. In the case of most people, however, ig- norant of the forces of the invisible worlds and unaccustomed to exercise their wills, 283 . Esoteric Christianity the concentration of mind and the earnest desire which are necessary for successful action are far more easily reached by prayer than by a deliberate mental effort to put forth their own strength. They would doubt their own power, even if they under- stood the theory, and doubt is fatal to the exercise of the will. That the person who prays does not understand the machinery he sets going in no wise affects the result. A child who stretches out his hand and grasps an object need not understand anything of the working of the muscles, nor of the elec- trical and chemical changes set up by the movement in muscles and nerves, nor need he elaborately calculate the distance of the object by measuring the angle made by the optic axes; he wills to take hold of the thing he wants, and the apparatus of his body obeys his will though he does not even know of its existence. So is it with the man who prays, unknowing of the creative force of his thought, of the living creature he has sent out to do his bidding. He acts as unconsciously as the child, and like the child grasps what he wants. ' In both cases 284 Prayer God is equally the primal Agent, all power being from Him; in both cases the actual work is done by the apparatus provided by His laws. But this is not the only way in which prayers of this class are answered. Some one temporarily out of the physical body and at work in the invisible worlds, or a passing Angel, may hear the cry for help, and may then put the thought of sending the required aid into the brain of some charitable person. “ The thought of so-and- so came into my head this morning,” such a person will say. “I daresay a cheque would be useful to him.” Very many prayers are answered in this way, the link between the need and the supply being some invisible Intelligence. Herein is part of the ministry of the lower Angels, and they will thus sup- ply personal necessities, as well as bring aid to charitable undertakings. The failure of prayers of this class is due to another hidden cause. Every man has contracted debts which have to be paid; his wrong thoughts, wrong desires, and wrong actions have built up obstacles in his way, 285 Esoteric Christianity and sometimes even hem him in as the walls of a prison-house. A debt of wrong is dis- charged by a payment of suffering; a man must bear the consequences of the wrongs he has wrought. A man condemned to die of starvation by his own wrong-doing in the past may hurl his prayers against that dest- iny in vain. The desire-form he creates will seek but will not find; it will be met and thrown back by the current of past wrong. Here, as everywhere, we are liv- ing in a realm of law, and forces may be modified or entirely frustrated by the play of other forces with which they come into contact. Two exactly similar forces might be applied to two exactly similar balls; in one case, no other force might be applied to the ball, and it might strike the mark aimed at; in the other, a second force might strike the ball and send it entirely out of its course. And so With two similar prayers; one may go on its way unopposed and efiect its object; the other may be flung aside by the far stronger force of a past wrong. One prayer is answered, the other unanswered; but in both cases the result is by law. 286 Prayer Let us consider Class B. Prayers for help in moral and intellectual difficulties have a double result; they act directly to attract help, and they react on the person who prays. They draw the attention of the Angels, of the disciples working outside the body, who are ever seeking to help the be- wildered mind, and counsel, encouragement, illumination, are thrown into the brain-con- sciousness, thus giving the answer to prayer in the most direct way. “And he kneeled down and prayed . . . . and there appeared an Angel unto Him from heaven, strength- ening Him.”1 Ideas are suggested which clear away an intellectual difliculty, or throw light on an obscure moral problem, or the sweetest comfort is poured into the distressed heart, soothing its perturbations and calming its anxieties. And truly if no Angel were passing that way, the cry of the distressed would reach the “Hidden Heart of Heaven,” and a messenger would be sent to carry comfort, some Angel, ever ready to fly swiftly on feeling the impulse, bearing the Divine will to help. 18. Luke xxii. 41, 43. 287 Esoteric Christianity There is also what is sometimes called a subjective answer to such prayers, the reaction of the prayer on the utterer. His prayer places his heart and mind in the re- ceptive attitude, and this stills the lower nature, and thus allows the strength and illuminative power of the higher to stream into it unchecked. The currents of energy which normally flow downwards, or out- wards, from the Inner Man, are, as a rule, directed to the external world, and are util- ised in the ordinary afiairs of life by the brain-consciousness, for the carrying on of its daily activities. But when this brain- consciousness turns away from the outer world, and shutting its outward-going doors, directs its gaze inwards; when it deliberately closes itself to the outer and opens itself to the inner; then it becomes a vessel able to receive and to hold, instead of a mere conduit-pipe between the interior and exterior worlds. In the silence ob- tained by the cessation of the noises of ex- ternal activities, the “still small voice” of the Spirit can make itself heard, and the concentrated attention of the expectant 288 Prayer mind enables it to catch the soft Whisper of the Inner self. Even more markedly does help come from without and from within, when the prayer is for spiritual enlightenment, for spiritual growth. Not only do all helpers, angelic and human, most eagerly seek to forward spiritual progress, seizing on every oppor- tunity offered by the upward-aspiring soul; but the longing for such growth liberates energy of a high kind, the spiritual longing calling forth an answer from the spiritual realm. Once more the law of sympathetic vibrations asserts itself, and the note of lofty aspiration is answered by a note of its own order, by a. liberation of energy of its own kind, by a vibration synchronous with itself. The Divine Life is ever pressing from above against the limits that bind it, and when the upward-rising force strikes against those limits from below, the separat- ing wall is broken through, and the Divine Life floods the Soul. When a man feels that inflow of spiritual life, he cries: “My prayer has been answered, and God has sent down His Spirit into my heart.” Truly so; 19 289 Esoteric Christianity yet he rarely understands that that Spirit is ever seeking entrance, but that coming to His own, His own receive Him not.1 “Be- hold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear my voice, and open the door, I will come in to him.” ’ . The general principle with regard to all prayers of this class is that just in propor- tion to the submergence of the personality and the intensity of the upward aspiration will be the answer from the wider life with- in and without us. We separate ourselves. If we cease the separation and make our- selves one with the greater, we find that light and life and strength flow into us. When the separate will is turned away from its own objects and set to serve the divine purpose, then the strength of the Divine pours into it. As a man swims against the stream, he makes slow progress; but with it, he is carried on by all the force of the current. In every department of Nature the divine energies are working, and everything that a man does he does by means of the 1S. John i. 11. ”Rev. iii. 20. 290 Prayer energies that are working in the line along which he desires to do 3 his greatest achieve- ments are wrought, not by his own ener- gies, but by the skill with which he selects and combines the forces that aid him, and neutralises those that oppose him by those that are favourable. Forces that would whirl us away as straws in the wind become our most effective servants when we work with them. Is it then any wonder that in prayer, as in everything else, the divine energies become associated with the man who, by his prayer, seeks to work as part of the Divine? This highest form of prayer in Class B merges almost imperceptibly into Class C, where prayer loses its petitionary character, and becomes either a meditation on, or a worship of, God. Meditation is the steady quiet fixing of the mind on God, whereby the lower mind is stilled and presently left vacant, so that the Spirit, escaping from it, rises into contemplation of the divine Perfection, and reflects within himself the divine Image. “Meditation is silent or un- uttered prayer, or as Plato expressed it: ‘ the 291 Esoteric Christianity ardent turning of the Soul towards the Divine; not to ask any particular good (as in the common meaning of prayer), but for good itself, for the Universal Supreme Good.’ ” 1 This is the prayer that, by thus liberating the Spirit, is the means of union between man and God. By the working of the laws of thought a man becomes that which he thinks, and when he meditates on the divine perfections he gradually reproduces in himself that on which his mind is fixed. Such a mind, shaped to the higher and not the lower, cannot bind the Spirit, and the freed Spirit leaping upward to his source, prayer is lost in union and separateness is left behind. Worship also, the rapt adoration from which all petition is absent, and which seeks to pour itself forth in sheer love of the Per— fect, dimly sensed, is a means—the easiest means—of union with God. In this the consciousness, limited by the brain, contem- plates in mute ecstasy the Image it creates 1H. P. Blavatsky. Key to Theosophy, p. 10. 292 Prayer of Him whom it knows to be beyond imag- ining, and oft, rapt by the intensity of his love beyond the limits of the intellect, the man as a free Spirit soars upwards into realms where these limits are transcended, and feels and knows far more than on his return he can tell in words or clothe in form. Thus the Mystic gazes on the Beatific Vis- ion; thus the Sage rests in the calm of the Wisdom that is beyond knowledge; thus the Saint reaches the purity wherein God is seen. Such prayer irradiates the worship- per, and from the mount of such high com- munion descending to the plains of earth, the very face of flesh shines with supernal glory, translucent to the flame that burns within. Happy they who know the reality which no words may convey to those who know it not. Those whose eyes have seen “the King in His beauty ” 1 will remember, and they will understand. When prayer is thus understood, its perennial necessity for all who believe in religion will be patent, and we see why its practice has been so much advocated by all lIs. xxxiii. 17. 293 Esoteric Christianity who study the higher life. For the student of the Lesser Mysteries prayer should be of the kinds grouped under Class B, and he should endeavour to rise to the pure meditation and worship of the last class, eschewing altogether the lower kinds. For him the teaching of Iamblichus on this subject is useful. Iamblichus says that prayers “produce an indissoluble and sacred com- munion with the Gods,” and then proceeds to give some interestingdetails on prayer, as considered by the practical Occultist. “For this is of itself a. thing worthy to be known, and renders more perfect the science concerning the Gods. I say, therefore, that the first species of prayer is Collective; and that it is also the leader of contact with, and a knowledge of, divinity. The second species is the bond of concordant Commu- nion, calling forth, prior to the energy of speech, the gifts imparted by the Gods, and perfecting the whole of our operations prior to our intellectual conceptions. And the third and most perfect species of prayer is the seal of inefiable Union with the divin- ities, in whom it establishes all the power 294 Prayer and authority of prayer; and thus causes the soul to repose in the Gods, as in a never failing port. But from these three terms, in which all the divine measures are con- tained, suppliant adoration not only concili- ates to us the friendship of the Gods, but supernally extends to us three fruits, being as it were three Hesperian apples of gold. The first of these pertains to illumination; the second to a communion of operation; but through the energy of the third we receiveaperfect plenitude of divine fire. . . . No operation, however, in sacred concerns, can succeed without the intervention of prayer. Lastly, the continual exercise of prayer nourishes the vigour of our intellect, and renders the receptacle of the soul far more capacious for the communications of the Gods. It likewise is the divine key, which opens to men the penetralia of'the Gods; accustoms us to the splendid rivers of supernal light; in a short time perfects our inmost recesses, and disposes them for the ineflable embrace and contact of the Gods; and does not desist till it raises us to the summit of all. It also gradually and 295 Esoteric Christianity silently draws upward the manners of our soul, by divesting them of everything for- eign to a divine nature, and clothes us with the perfections of the Gods. Besides this, it produces an indissoluble communion and friendship with divinity, nourishes a divine love, and inflames the divine part of the soul. Whatever is of an opposing and con- trary nature in the soul, it expiates and purifies; expels whatever is prone to genera- tion and retains anything of the dregs of mortality in its ethereal and splendid spirit; perfects a good hope and faith concerning the reception of divine light; and in one word, renders those by whom it is employed the familiars and domestics of the Gods.” 1 Out of such study and practice one inevit- able result arises, as a man begins to un- derstand, and as the wider range of human life unfolds before him. He sees that by, knowledge his strength is much increased, that there are forces around him that he can understand and control, and that in proportion to his knowledge is his power. Then...he. learn.s--.that-.Divinitx...li.es., hidign 1 0n the fifysteries, sec. v. ch. 26. 296 Prayer within himself, and that nothing that is fleeting can satisfy that God within; that only union with'the One, the Perfect, can still his cravings. Then there gradually arises within him the will to set himself at one with the Divine; he ceases to vehement- ly seek to change circumstances, and to throw fresh causes into the stream of effects. He recognises himself as an agent rather than an actor, a channel rather than a. source, a servant rather than a master, and seeks to discover the divine purposes and to work in harmony therewith. When a man has reached that point, he has risen above all prayer, save that which is meditation and worship; he has nothing to ask for, in this world or in any other; he remains in a steadfast serenity, seeking but to serve God. That is the state of Sonship, where the will of the Son is one with the will of the Father, where the one calm sur- render is made, “Lo, I come to do Thy will, 0 God. I am content to do it ; yea, Thy law is within my heart.” 1 Then all prayer 1PS. X]. 7, 8, Prayer Book version. 297 Esoteric Christianity is seen to be unnecessary; all asking is felt as an impertinence; nothing can be longed for that is not already in the purposes of that Will, and all Will be brought into active manifestation as the agents of that Will perfect themselves in the work. 298 CHAPTER XI THE FORGIVENESS OF SINS “I BELIEVE in . . . the forgiveness of sins.” “I acknowledge one baptism for the remis- sion of sins.” The words fall facilely from the lips of worshippers in every Christian church throughout the world, as they repeat the familiar creeds called those of the Apos- tles and the Nicene. Among the sayings of Jesus the words frequently recur: “Thy sins are forgiven thee,” and it is noteworthy that this phrase constantly accompanies the exercise of His healing powers, the release from physical and moral disease being thus marked as simultaneous. In fact, on one occasion He pointed to the healing of a palsy-stricken man as a sign that he had a right to declare to a man that his sins were forgiven.1 So also of one woman it was said: “Her sins, which are many, are for— given, for she loved much.”2 In the ‘8. Luke, v. 18—26. 2Ibz'd. vii. 47. 299 Esoteric Christianity famous Gnostic treatise, the Pistz’s Sophia, the very purpose of the Mysteries is said to be the remission of sins. “Should they have been sinners, should they have been in all the sins and all the iniquities of the world, of which I have spoken unto you, nevertheless if they turn themselves and re- pent, and have made the renunciation which I have just described unto you, give ye unto them the mysteries of the kingdom of light; hide them not from them at all. It is be- cause of sin that I have brought these mys- teries into the world, for the remission of all the sins which they have committed from the beginning. Wherefore have I said unto you aforetime, ‘ I came not to call the righteous.’ Now, therefore, I have brought the mysteries, that the sins of all men may be remitted, and they be brought into the kingdom of light. For these mys- teries are the boon of the first mystery of the destruction of the sins and iniquities of all sinners.” 1 In these Mysteries, the remission of sin is ' G. R. S. Mead, translated. Loo. cz't., bk. ii., §§ 260, 261. 300 The Forgiveness of Sins by baptism, as in the acknowledgment in the Nicene Creed. Jesus says: “Hearken, again, that I may tell you the word in truth, of what type is the mystery of baptism which remitteth sins. . . . When a man receiveth the mysteries of the baptisms, those mysteries become a mighty fire, ex- ceedingly fierce, wise, which burneth up all sins; they enter into the soul occultly, and devour all the sins which the spiritual coun- terfeit hath implanted in it.” And after describing further the process of purifica- tion, Jesus adds: “This is the way in which the mysteries of the baptisms remit sins and every iniquity.” 1 In one form or another the “forgiveness of sins” appears in most, if not in all, re- ligions; and wherever this consensus of opinion is found, we may safely conclude, according to the principle already laid down, that some fact in nature underlies it. Moreover, there is a response in human nature to this idea that sins are forgiven; we notice that people suffer under a con- ‘Ibz'd., §§ 299, 300. 301 Esoteric Christianity sciousness of wrong-doing, and that when they shake themselves clear of their past, and free themselves from the shackling fet- ters of remorse, they go forward with glad heart and sunlit eyes, though erstwhile en- clouded by darkness. They feel as though a burden were lifted off them, a clog removed. The “sense of sin” has disap- peared, and with it the gnawing pain. They know the springtime of the soul, the word of power which makes all things new. A song of gratitude wells up as the natural outburst of the heart, the time for the sing~ ing of birds is come, there is “joy among the Angels.” This not uncommon experi- ence is one that becomes puzzling, when the person experiencing it, or seeing it in an- other, begins to ask himself what has really taken place, what has brought about the change in consciousness, the effects of which are so manifest. Modern thinkers, who have thoroughly assimilated the idea of changeless laws underlying all phenomena, and who have studied the workings of these laws, are at first apt to reject any and every theory of 302 The Forgiveness of Sins the forgiveness of sins as being inconsistent with that fundamental truth, just as the scientist, penetrated with the idea of the in- violability of law, repels all thought which is inconsistent with it. And both are right in founding themselves on the un- faltering working of law, for law is but the expression of the divine Nature, in which there is no variableness, neither shadow of turning. Any view of the forgiveness of sins that we may adopt must not clash with this fundamental idea, as necessary to ethical as to physical science. “The bottom would fall out of everything” if we could not rest securely in the everlasting arms of the Good Law. But in pursuing our investigations, we are struck with the fact that the very Teachers who are most insistent on the changeless working of law are also those who emphati- cally proclaim the forgiveness of sins. At one time Jesus is saying: “That every idle word that men shall speak, they shall give account thereof in the day of judgment,”1 and at another: “Son, be of good cheer, thy lS. Matt. xii. 36. 303 Esoteric Christianity sins be forgiven thee.”1 So in the Bhaga- vad Gitd we read constantly of the bonds of action, that “the world is bound by action,” 9 and that a man “ recovereth the characteris- tics of his former body ”33 and yet it is said that “even if the most sinful worship me, with undivided heart, he, too, must be ac- counted righteous.”‘ It would seem, then, that whatever may have been intended in the world’s Scriptures by the phrase, “the forgiveness of sins,” it was not thought, by Those who best know the law, to clash with the inviolable sequence of cause and efiect. If we examine even the crudest idea of the forgiveness of sins prevalent in our own day, we find that the believer in it does not mean that the forgiven sinner is to escape from the consequences of his sin in this world; the drunkard, whose sins are forgiven on his repentance, is still seen to suffer from shaken nerves, impaired digestion, and the lack of confidence shown towards him by his fellow-men. The statements made as to forgiveness, when they are examined, are 1]bid., ix. 2. 91,00. cit, iii. 9. 3Ibz'd., vi. 43. 4Ibid., ix. 30. 304 The Forgiveness of Sins ultimately found to refer to the relations between the repentant sinner and God, and to the post-mortem penalties attached to unforgiven sin in the creed of the speaker, and not to any escape from the mundane consequences of sin. The loss of belief in reincarnation, and of a. sane View as to the continuity of life, whether it were spent in this or in the next two worlds,1 brought with it various incongruities and indefens- ible assertions, among them the blasphem- ous and terrible idea of the eternal torture of the human soul for sins committed during the brief span of one life spent on earth. In order to escape from this nightmare, theo- logians posited a forgiveness which should release the sinner from this dread imprison- ment in an eternal hell. It did not, and was never supposed to, set him free in this world from the natural consequences of his ill-doings, nor—except in modern Protestant communities—was it held to deliver him from prolonged purgatorial sufferings, the direct results of sin, after the death of the lSee ante, Chap. VH1. 20 305 Esoteric Christianity physical body. The law had its course, both in this world and in purgatory, and in each world sorrow followed on the heels of sin, even as the wheels follow the ox. It was but eternal torture—which existed only in the clouded imagination of the believer— that was escaped by the forgiveness of sins; and we may perhaps go so far as to suggest that the dogmatist, having postulated an eternal hell as the monstrous result of tran- sient errors, felt compelled to provide a way of escape from an incredible and unjust fate, and therefore further postulated an incred- ible and unjust forgiveness. Schemes that are elaborated by human speculation, with- out regard to the facts of life, are apt to land the speculator in thought-morasses, whence he can only extricate himself by blundering through the mire in an opposite direction. A superfluous eternal hell was balanced by a superfluous forgiveness, and thus the uneven scales of justice were again rendered level. Leaving these aberrations of the unenlightened, let us return into the realm of fact and right reason. When a man has committed an evil action 306 The Forgiveness of Sins he has attached himself to a sorrow, for sor- row is ever the plant that springs from the seed of sin. It may be said, even more accurately, that sin and sorrow. are but the two sides of one act, not two separate events. As every object has two sides, one of which is behind, out of sight, when the other is in front, in sight, so every act has two sides, which cannot both be seen at once in the physical world. In other worlds, good and happiness, evil and sorrow, are seen as the two sides of the same thing. This is what is called karma—a convenient and now widely-used term, originally Sam- skrit, expressing this connection or identity, literally meaning “action ”—and the suffer- ing is therefore called the karmic result of the wrong. The result, the “other side,” may not follow immediately, may not even accrue during the present incarnation, but sooner or later it will appear and clasp the sinner with its arms of pain. Now a result in the physical world, an effect experienced through our physical consciousness, is the final outcome of a cause set going in the past; it is the ripened fruit; in it a particu- 307 Esoteric Christianity lar force becomes manifest and exhausts itself. That force has been working out- wards, and its effects are already over in the mind ere it appears in the body. Its bodily manifestation, its appearance, in the physi- cal world, is the sign of the completion of its course.1 If at such a moment the sinner, having exhausted the karma of his sin, comes into contact with a Sage who can see the past and the present, the invisible and the visible, such a Sage may discern the end- ing of the particular karma, and, the sen- tence being completed, may declare the cap- tive free. Such an instance seems to be given in the story of the man sick of the palsy, already alluded to, a case typical of many. A physical ailment is the last ex- pression of a past ill-doing; the mental and moral outworking is completed, and the suf- ferer is brought—by the agency of some Angel, as an administrator of the law—into 1This is the cause of the sweetness and patience often noticed in the sick who are of very pure nature. They have learned the lesson of suffering, and they do not make fresh evil karma by impatience under the result of past bad karma, then exhausting itself. 308 The Forgiveness of Sins the presence of One able to relieve physical disease by the exertion of a higher energy. First, the Initiate declares that the man’s sins are forgiven, and then justifies his in- sight by the authoritative word, “Arise, take up thy bed, and go unto thine house.” Had no such enlightened One been there, the disease would have passed away under the restoring touch of nature, under a force applied by the invisible angelic Intelligences, who carry out in this world the workings of karmic law; when a greater One is acting, this force is of more swiftly compelling power, and the physical vibrations are at once attuned to the harmony that is health. All such forgiveness of sins may be termed declaratory; the karma is exhausted, and a “knower of karma ” declares the fact. The assurance brings a relief to the mind that is akin to the relief experienced by a prisoner when the order for his release is given, that order being as much a part of the law as the original sentence; but the relief of the man who thus learns of the exhaustion of an evil karma is keener, because he cannot himself tell the term of its action. 309 Esoteric Christianity It is noticeable that these declarations of forgiveness are constantly coupled with the statement that the sufierer showed “faith,” and that without this nothing could be done; 75.6., the real agent in the ending of this karma is the sinner himself. In the case of the “woman that was a sinner,” the two declarations are coupled: “Thy sins are for- given . . . Thy faith hath saved thee; go in peace.” 1 This “faith” is the up-welling in man of his own divine essence, seeking the divine ocean of like essence, and when this breaks through the lower nature that holds it in—as the water-spring breaks through the encumbering earth-clods—the power thus liberated works on the whole nature, bringing it into harmony with itself. The man only becomes conscious of this as the karmic crust of evil is broken up by its force, and that glad consciousness of a power within himself hitherto unknown, as- serting itself as soon as the evil karma is exhausted, is a large factor in the joy, relief, and new strength that follow on the feeling 1 S. Luke vii. 48, 50. 310 The Forgiveness of Sins that sin is “forgiven,” that its results are past. And this brings us to the heart of the sub- ject—the changes that go on in a man’s in- ner nature, unrecognised by that part of his consciousness which works within the limits of his brain, until they suddenly assert themselves within those limits, coming apparently from nowhere, bursting forth “from the blue,” pouring from an unknown source. What wonder that a man, bewil- dered by their downrush—knowing nothing of the mysteries of his own nature, nothing of “the inner God” that is verily himself— imagines that to be from without which is really from within, and, unconscious of his own Divinity, thinks only of Divinities in the world external to himself. And this misconception is the more easy, because the final touch, the vibration that breaks the imprisoning shell, is often the answer from the Divinity within another man, or Within some superhuman being, responding to the insistent cry from the imprisoned Divinity within himself; he oft-times recognises the brotherly aid, while not recognising that 311 Esoteric Christianity he himself, the cry from his inner nature, called it forth. As an explanation from a wiser than ourselves may make an intellec- tual difficulty clear to our mind, though it is our own mind that, thus aided, grasps the solution; as an encouraging word from one purer than ourselves may nerve us to a moral effort that we should have thought beyond our power, though it is our own strength that makes it; so may a loftier Spirit than our own, one more conscious of its Divinity, aid us to put forth our own divine energy, though it is that very putting forth that lifts us to a. higher plane. We are all bound by ties of brotherly help to those above us as to those below us, and why should we, who so constantly find our—‘ selves able to help in their development souls less advanced than ourselves, hesitate to ad” mit that we can receive similar help from Those far above us, and that our progress may be rendered much swifter by Their aid? Now among the changes that 'go on in a man’s inner nature, unknown to his lower consciousness, are those that have to do with the putting forth of his will. The Ego, 312 The Forgiveness of Sins glancing backward over his past, balancing up its results, suffering under its mistakes, determines on a change of attitude, on a change of activity. While his lower vehicle is still, under his former impulses, plunging along lines of action that bring it into sharp collisions with the law, the Ego determines on an opposite course of conduct. Hitherto he has turned his face longingly to the anim- al, the pleasures of the lower world have held him fast enchained. Now he turns his face to the true goal of evolution, and de- termines to work for loftier joys. He sees that the whole world is evolving, and that if he sets himself against that mighty current it dashes him aside, bruising him sorely in the process; he sees that if he sets himself with it, it will bear him onwards on its bosom and land him in the desired haven. He then resolves to change his life, he turns determinedly on his steps, he faces the other way. The first result of the effort to turn his lower nature into the changed course, is much distress and disturbance. The habits formed under the impacts of the old views resist stubbornly the impulses 313 Esoteric Christianity flowing from the new, and a bitter conflict arises. Gradually the consciousness work- ing in the brain accepts the decision made on higher planes, and then “becomes con- scious of sin” by this very recognition of the law. The sense of error deepens, re- ' morse preys on the mind; spasmodic efiorts are made towards improvement, and, frus- trated by old habits, repeatedly fail, till the man, overwhelmed by grief for the past, despair of the present, is plunged into hope- less gloom. At last, the ever-increasing suflering wrings from the Ego a cry for help, answered from the inner depths of his own nature, from the God within as well as around him, the Life of his life. He turns from the lower nature that is thwarting him to the higher which is his innermost being, from the separated self that tortures him to the One Self that is the Heart of all. But this change of front means that he turns his face from the darkness, that he turns his face to the light. The light was always there, but his back was towards it; now he sees the sun, and its radiance cheers his eyes, and overfioods his being 314 The Forgiveness of Sins with delight. His heart was closed; it is; now flung open, and the ocean of life flows,’ in, in full tide, suffusing him with joy}‘ Wave after wave of new life uplifts him, and the gladness of the dawn surrounds him. He sees his past as past, because his will is set to follow a higher path, and he recks little of the suffering that the past may bequeath to him, since he knows he will not hand on such bitter legacy from his present. , This sense of peace, of joy, of free- dom, is the feeling spoken of as the result of the forgiveness of sins. The obstacles set up by the lower nature between the God within and the God without are swept away, and that nature scarce recognises that the change is in itself and not inthe Oversoul. As a child, having thrust away the mother’s guiding hand and hidden its face against the wall, may fancy itself alone and forgotten, until, turning with a cry, it finds around it the protecting mother- arms that were never but a handsbreadth away; so does man in his wilfulness push away the shielding arms of the divine Mother of the worlds, only to find, when he 315 Esoteric Christianity turns back his face, that he has never been outside their protecting shelter, and that wherever he may wander that guarding love is round him still. The key to this change in the man, that brings about “forgiveness,” is given in the verse of the Bhagavad-Gitd already partly quoted: “Even if the most sinful worship me, with undivided heart, he too must be I accounted righteous, for he hath rightly resolved.” On that right resolution follows the inevitable result: “ Speedily he becometh dutiful and goeth to peace.”1 The essence of sin lies in setting the will of the part against the will of the whole, the human against the Divine. When this is changed, when the Ego puts his separate will into union with the will that works for evolu- tion, then, in the world where to will is to do, in the world where effects are seen as present in causes, the man is “accounted righteous”; the effects on the lower planes must inevitably follow; “speedily he becom- eth dutiful” in action, having already be- ‘Loc. cit, ix. 31. 316 The Forgiveness of Sins come dutiful in will. Here we judge by actions, the dead leaves of the past; there they judge by wills, the germinating seeds of the future. Hence the Christ ever says to men in the lower world: “Judge not.” 1 Even after the new direction has been definitely followed, and has become the nor- mal habit of the life, there come times of failure, alluded to in the P75315753 Sophia, when Jesus is asked whether a man may be again admitted to the Mysteries, after he has fallen away, if he again repents. The answer of Jesus is in the affirmative, but he states that a time comes when re-admission is beyond the power of any save of the high- est Mystery, who pardons ever. “Amen, amen, I say unto you, whosoever shall re- ceive the mysteries of the first mystery, and then shall turn back and transgress twelve times [even], and then should again repent twelve times, offering prayer in the mystery of the first mystery, he shall be forgiven. But if he should transgress after twelve times, should he turn back and transgress, ‘8. Matt. vii. 1. 317 Esoteric Christianity it shall not be remitted unto him for ever, so that he may turn again unto his mystery, whatever it be. For him there is no means of repentance unless he have received the mysteries of that ineffable, which hath com- passion at all times and remitteth sins for ever and ever.”1 These restorations after failure, in which “sin is remitted,” meet us in human life, especially in the higher phases of evolution. A man is ofiered an opportunity, which, taken, would open up to him new possibilities of growth. He fails to grasp it, and falls away from the position he had gained that made the further opportunity possible. For him, for the time, further progress is blocked; he must turn all his efforts wearily to retread the ground he had already trodden, and to regain and make sure his footing on the place from which he had slipped. Only when this is accomplished will he hear the gentle Voice that tells him that the past is out-worn, the weakness turned to strength, and that the gateway is again open for his lLoo. cz‘t., bk. ii. g 305. 318 The Forgiveness of Sins passage. Here again the “forgiveness” is but the declaration by a proper authority of the true state of affairs, the opening of the gate to the competent, its closure to the in- competent. Where there had been failure, with its accompanying suffering, this declar- ation would be felt as a “baptism for the remission of sins,” re-admitting the aspirant to a privilege lost by his own act; this would certainly give rise to feelings of joy and peace, to a relief from the burden of sorrow, to a feeling that the clog of the past had at last fallen from the feet. Remains one truth that should never be forgotten: that we are living in an ocean of light, of love, of bliss, that surrounds us at all times, the Life of God. As the sun floods the earth with his radiance so does that Life enlighten all, only that Sun of the world never sets to any part of it. We shut this light out of our consciousness by our selfishness, our heartlessness, our impurity, our intolerance, but it shines on us ever the same, bathing us on every side, pressing against our self-built walls with gentle, strong persistence. When the soul throws 319 Esoteric Christianity down these excluding walls, the light flows in, and the soul finds itself flooded with sun- shine, breathing the blissful air of heaven. “For the Son of man is in heaven,” though he knows it not, and its breezes fan his brow if he bares it to their breaths. God ever respects man’s individuality, and will not enter his consciousness until that con- sciousness opens to give welcome; “Behold I stand at the door and knock ” 1 is the atti- tude of every spiritual Intelligence towards the evolving human soul; not in lack of sympathy is rooted that waiting for the open door, but in deepest wisdom. Man is not to be compelled; he is to be free. He is not a slave, but a. God in the making, and the growth cannot be forced, but must be willed from within. Only when the will consents, as Giordano Bruno teaches, will God influence man, though He be “everywhere present, and ready to come to the aid of whosoever turns to Him through the act of the intelligence, and who unreservedly presents himself with the lRev. iii. 20. 320 The Forgiveness of Sins afiection of the will.” 1 “The divine potency which is all in all does not proffer or with- hold, except through assimilation or rejec- tion by oneself.” ’ “It is taken in quickly, as the solar light, without hesitation, and makes itself present to whoever turns himself to it and opens himself to it . . . the windows are opened, but the sun enters in a moment, so does it happen similarly in this case.” 3 hhe sense of “forgiveness,” then, is the feeling which fills the heart with joy when the will is tuned to harmony with the Di- vine, when, the soul having opened its win- dows, the sunshine of love and light and bliss pours in, when the part feels its one- ness with the whole, and the One Life thrills each vein. This is the noble truth that gives vitality to even the crudest pres- entation of the “forgiveness of sins,” and that makes it often, despite its intellectual incompleteness, an inspirer to pure and spiritual living. And this is the truth, as seen in the Lesser Mysteries. lG. Bruno, trans. by L. Williams. The Heroic Enthu- siasts, vol. i., p. 133. 9Ibz’d., vol. ii., pp. 27, 28. 3Iln'd., pp. 102, 103. 21 321 CHAPTER XII SACRAMENTS IN all religions there exist certain ceremon- ials, or rites, which are regarded as of vital importance by the believers in the religion, and which are held to confer certain benefits on those taking part in them. The word Sacrament, or some equivalent term, has been applied to these ceremonials, and they all have the same character. Little exact exposition has been given as to their nature and meaning, but this is another of the sub- jects explained of old in the Lesser Myster- ies. The peculiar characteristic of a Sacrament resides in two of its properties. First, there is the exoteric ceremony, which is a pictorial allegory, a representation of something by actions and materials—not a verbal alle- gory, a teaching given in words, conveying a truth; but an acted representation, certain 322 Sacraments definite material things used in a particular way. The object in choosing these mat- erials, and aimed at in the ceremonies by which their manipulation is accompanied, is to represent, as in a picture, some truth which it is desired to impress upon the minds of the people present. That is the first and obvious property of a Sacrament, differentiating it from other forms of wor- ship and meditation. It appeals to those who without this imagery would fail to catch a subtle truth, and shows to them in a vivid and graphic form the truth which otherwise would escape them. Every Sacra- ment, when it is studied, should be taken first from this standpoint, that it is a pictor- ial allegory; the essential things to be stud- ied will therefore be: the material objects which enter into the allegory, the method in which they are employed, and the mean- ing which the whole is intended to convey. The second characteristic property of a Sacrament belongs to the facts of the invis- ible worlds, and is studied by occult science. The person who officiates in the Sacrament should possess this knowledge, as much, 323 Esoteric Christianity though not all, of the operative power of the Sacrament depends on the knowledge of the ofliciator. A Sacrament links the mat- erial world with the subtle and invisible regions to which that world is related; it is a link between the visible and theiinvisible. And it is not only a link between this world and other worlds, but it is also a method by which the energies of the invisible world are transmuted into action in the physical; an actual method of changing energies of one kind into energies of another, as literally as in the galvanic cell chemical energies are changed into electrical. The essence of all energies is one and the same, whether in the visible or invisible worlds; but the energ- ies differ according to the grades of matter through which they manifest. A Sacra- ment serves as a kind of crucible in which spiritual alchemy takes place. An energy placed in this crucible and subjected to cer- tain manipulations comes forth different in expression. Thus an energy of a subtle kind, belonging to one of the higher regions of the universe, may be brought into direct relation with people living in the physical 324. Sacraments world, and may be made to aflect them in the physical world as well as in its own realm; the Sacrament forms the last bridge from the invisible to the visible, and enables the energies to be directly applied to those who fulfil the necessary conditions and who take part in the Sacrament. The Sacraments of the Christian Church lost much of their dignity and of the recog- nition of their occult power among those who separated from the Roman Catholic Church at the time of the “Reformation.” The previous separation between the East and the West, leaving the Greek Orthodox Church on the one side and the Roman Church on the other, in no way affected be- lief in the Sacraments, They remained in both great communities as the recognised links between the seen and the unseen, and sanctified the life of the believer from cradle to grave. The Seven Sacraments of Christi- anity cover the Whole of life, from the welcome of Baptism to the farewell of EXr treme Unction. Th j were established by Occultists, by men who knew the 1nv131hle Ms; and the materlals used, the words 325 Esoteric Christianity spoken, the signs made, were all deliberately chosen and arranged with a view to bring- ing about certain results. At the time of the Reformation, the seceding Churches, which threw off the yoke of Rome, were not led by Occultists, but by ordinary men of the world, some good and some bad, but all profoundly ignorant of the facts of the invisible worlds, and conscious only of the outer shell of Christianity, its literal dogmas and exoteric worship. The consequence of this was that the Sacraments lost their supreme place in Christian wor- ship, and in most Protestant communities were reduced to two, Baptism and the Eucharist. The sacramental nature of the others was not explicitly denied in the most important of the seceding Churches, but the two were set apart from the five, as of universal obligation, of which every member of the Church must partake in order to be recognised as a full member. The general definition of a Sacrament is given quite accurately, save for the super- fluous words, “ordained by Christ Him- 326 Sacraments self,” in the Catechism of the Church of England, and even these words might be retained if the mystic meaning be given to the word “Christ.” A Sacrament is there said to be: “An outward and visible sign of an inward and spiritual grace given unto us, ordained by Christ Himself, as a means whereby we receive the same and a pledge to assure us thereof.” ‘ In this definition we find laid down the two distinguishing characteristics of a Sac- rament as given above. The “outward and visible sign” is the pictorial allegory, and the phrase, the “means whereby we receive the” “inward and spiritual grace” covers the second property. This last phrase should be carefully noted by those members of Protestant Churches who regard Sacra- ments as mere external forms and outer ceremonies. For it distinctly alleges that the Sacrament is really a means whereby the grace is conveyed, and thus implies that without it the grace does not pass in the same fashion from the spiritual to the physic cal world. It is the distinct recognition of a Sacrament in its second aspect, as a means 327 Esoteric Christianity whereby spiritual powers are brought into activity on earth. In order to understand a Sacrament, it is necessary that we should definitely recog- nise the existence of an occult, or hidden, side of Nature; this is spoken of as the life- side of Nature, the consciousness-side, more accurately the mind in Nature. Underlying all sacramental action there is the belief that the invisible world exercises a potent influence over the visible, and to understand a. Sacrament we must understand some- thing of the invisible Intelligences who administer Nature. We have seen in study- ing the doctrine of the Trinity that Spirit is manifested as the triple Self, and that as the Field for His manifestation there is Matter, the form-side of Nature, often regarded, and rightly, as Nature herself. We have to study both these aspects, the side of life and that of form, in order to under- stand a Sacrament. Stretching between the Trinity and humanity are many grades and hierarchies of invisible beings; the highest of these are the seven Spirits of God, the seven Fires, or 328 Sacraments Flames, that are before the throne of God.1 Each of these stands at the head of a vast host of Intelligences, all of whom share His nature and act under His direction; these are themselves graded, and are the Thrones, Powers, Princes, Dominations, Archangels, Angels, of whom mention is found in the writings of the Christian Fathers, who were versed in the Mysteries. Thus there are seven great hosts of these Beings, and they represent in their intelligence the divine Mind in Nature. They are found in all regions, and they ensoul the energies of Nature. From the standpoint of occultism there is no dead force and no dead matter. Force and matter alike are living and active, and an energy or a group of energies is the veil of an Intelligence, of a Conscious- ness, who has that energy as his outer expression, and the matter in which that energy moves yields a form which he guides or ensouls. Unless a man can thus look at Nature all esoteric teaching. must remain for 'him a sealed book. Without these angelic Lives, these countless invisible Intel- ‘ Rev. iv. 5. 329 Esoteric Christianity ligences, these Consciousnesses which en- soul the force and matter1 which is Nature, Nature herself would not only remain unin- telligible, but she would be out of relation alike to the divine Life that moves within and around her, and to the human lives that are developing in her midst. These innumerable Angels link the worlds to- gether; they are themselves evolving while helping the evolution of beings lower than themselves, and a new light is shed on evo- lution when we see that men form grades in these hierarchies of intelligent beings. These angels are the “sons of God” of an earlier birth than ours, who “shouted for joy ”’ when the foundations of the earth were laid amid the choiring of the Morning Stars. Other beings are below us in evolution —animals, plants, minerals, and elemental lives—as the Angels are above us; and as we thus study, a conception dawns upon us 1 The phrase “ force and matter” is used as it is so well- known in science. But force is one of the properties of matter, the one mentioned as Motion. See Ante, p. 262. 9Job xxxviii. 7. 330 Sacraments of a vast Wheel of Life, of numberless existences, inter-related and necessary each to each, man as a living Intelligence, as a self-conscious being, having his own place in this Wheel. The Wheel is ever turning by the divine Will, and the living Intelligences who form it learn to co-operate with that Will, and if in the action of those Intelli- gences there is any break or gap due to neglect or opposition, then the Wheel drags, turning slowly, and the chariot of the evolution of the worlds goes but heavily upon its way. ' These numberless Lives, above and below man, come into touch with human con- sciousness in very definite ways, and among these ways are sounds and colours. Each sound has a form in the invisible world, and combinations of sounds create compli- cated shapes.1 In the subtle matter of those worlds all sounds are accompanied by col- ours, so that they give rise to many-hued shapes, in many cases exceedingly beautiful. 1See on forms created by musical notes any scientific book on Sound, and also Mrs. Watts-Hughes’ illustrated book on Voice figures. 331 V Esoteric Christianity The vibrations set up in the visible world when a note is sounded set up vibrations in the worlds invisible, each one with its own specific character, and capable of producing certain effects. In communicating with the sub-human Intelligences connected with the lower invisible world and with the physi- cal, and in controlling and directing these, sounds must be used fitted to bring about the desired results, as language made up of definite sounds is used here. And in com- municating with the higher Intelligences certain sounds are useful, to create a. harmonious atmosphere, suitable for their activities, and to make our own subtle bodies receptive of their influences. This effect on the subtle bodies is a. most important part of the occult use of sounds. These bodies, like the physical, are in con stant vibratory motion, the vibrations changing with every thought or desire. These changing irregular vibrations ofier an obstacle to any fresh vibration coming from outside, and, in order to render the bodies susceptible to the higher influences, sounds are used which reduce the irregular vibra- 332 Sacraments tions to a steady rhythm, like in its nature to the rhythm of the Intelligence sought to be reached. The object of all often- repeated sentences is to effect this, as a musi- cian sounds the same note over and over again, until all the instruments are in tune. The subtle bodies must be tuned to the note of the Being sought, if his influence is to find free way through the nature of the worshipper, and this was ever done of old by the use of sounds. Hence, music has ever formed an integral part of worship, and certain definite cadences have been pre- served with care, handed on from age to age, In every religion there exist sounds of a peculiar character, called “Words of Pow- er,” consisting of sentences in a particular language chanted in a particular way; each religion possesses a stock of such sentences, special successions of sounds, now very gen- erally called “mantras,” that being the name given to them in the East, where the science of mantras has been much studied and elaborated. It is not necessary that a mantra—a succession of sounds arranged in a particular manner to bring about a defi- 333 Esoteric Christianity nite result—should be in any one particular language. Any language can be used for the purpose, though some are more suitable than others, provided that the person who makes the mantra possesses the requisite occult knowledge. There are hundreds of mantras in the Samskrit tongue, made by Occultists of the past, who were familiar with the laws of the invisible worlds. These have been handed down from generation to generation, definite words in a definite order chanted in a definite way. The effect of the chanting is to create vibrations, hence forms, in the physical and super-physical worlds, and according to the knowledge and purity of the singer will be the worlds his song is able to affect. If his knowledge be wide and deep, if his will be strong and his heart pure, there is scarcely any limit to the powers he may exercise in using some of these ancient mantras. As said, it is not necessary that any one particular language should be used. They may be in Samskrit, or in any one of the languages of the world, in which men of knowledge have put them together. 334 Sacraments This is the reason why, in the Roman Catholic Church, the Latin language is al- ways used in important acts of worship. It is not used as a dead language here, a tongue “not understanded of the people,” but as a living force in the invisible worlds. It is not used to hide knowledge from the people, but in order that certain vibrations may be set up in the invisible worlds which cannot be set up in the ordinary languages of Europe, unless a great Occultist should compose in them the necessary successions of sounds. To translate a mantra is to change it from a “Word of Power” into an ordinary sentence; the sounds being changed, other sound-forms are created. Some of the arrangements of Latin words, with the music wedded to them in Christian worship, cause the most marked effects in the supra-physical worlds, and any one who is at all sensitive will be conscious of peculiar efiects caused by the chanting of some of the most sacred sentences, especially in the Mass. Vibratory efiects may be felt by any one who will sit quiet and receptive as some of these sentences are uttered by 335 Esoteric Christianity priest or choristers. And at the same time effects are caused in the higher worlds di- rectly aflecting the subtle bodies of the wor- shippers in the way above described, and also appealing to the Intelligences in those worlds with a meaning as definite as the words addressed by one person to another on the physical plane, whether as prayer or, in some cases, as command. The sounds, causing active flashing forms, rise through the worlds, affecting the consciousness of the Intelligences residing in them, and bringing some of them to render the defin- ite services required by those who are taking part in the church office. Such mantras form an essential part of every Sacrament. The next essential part of the Sacrament, in its outward and visible form, are certain gestures. These are called Signs, or Seals, or Sigils—the three words meaning the same thing in a Sacrament. Each sign has its own particular meaning, and marks the direction imposed on the invisible forces with which the celebrant is dealing, whether those forces be his own or poured through 336 Sacraments him. In any case, they are needed to bring about the desired result, and they are an essential portion of the sacramental rite. Such a sign is called a “Sign of Power,” as the mantra is a “Word of Power.” It'is interesting to read in occult works of the past references to these facts, true then as now, true now as then. In the Egyptian Book of, the Dead is described the post-mor- tem journey of the Soul, and we read how he is stopped and challenged at various stages of that journey. He is stopped and challenged by the Guardians of the Gate of each successive world, and the Soul cannot pass through the Gate and go on his way unless he knows two things: he must pro- nounce a word, the Word of Power: he must make a sign, the Sign of Power. When that Word is spoken, when that Sign is given, the bars of the Gate fall down, and the Guardians stand aside to let the Soul pass through. A similar account is given in the great mystic Christian Gospel, the Bistisfioplgia, before mentioned.‘ Here the passage through the worlds is not of a Soul lSee mate, p. 137 and p. 300. 22 337 Esoteric Christianity set free from the body by death, but of one who has voluntarily left it in the course of Initiation. There are great Powers, the Powers of Nature, that bar his way, and till the Initiate gives the Word and the Sign, they will not allow him to pass through the portals of their realms. This double know- ledge, then, was necessary—to speak the Word of Power, to make the Sign of Power. Without these progress was blocked, and without these a Sacrament is no Sacrament. Further, in all Sacraments some physical material is used, or should be used.1 This is ever a symbol of that which is to be gained by the Sacrament, and points to the nature of the “inward and spiritual grace” received through it. This is also the material means of conveying the grace, not symbolically, but actually, and a subtle change in this material adapts it for high ends. Now a physical object consists of the solid, liquid, and gaseous particles into 1 In the Sacrament of Penance the ashes are now usually omitted, except on special occasions, but none the less they form part of the rite. 338 Sacraments which a chemist would resolve it by analysis, and further of ether, which inter-penetrates the grosser stufi's. In this ether play the magnetic energies. It is further connected with counterparts of subtle matter, in which play energies subtler than the magnetic, but like them in nature and more powerful. When such an object is magnetised a change is effected in the ethereal portion, the wave-motions are altered and systemat- ised, and made to follow the wave-motions of the ether of the magnetiser; it thus comes to share his nature, and the denser particles of the object, played on by the ether, slowly change their rates of vibration. If the magnetiser has the power of affecting the subtler counterparts also, he makes them similarly vibrate in assonance with his own. This is the secret of magnetic cures: the‘ irregular vibrations of the diseased person are so worked on as to accord with the reg- ular vibrations of the healthy operator, as definitely as an irregularly swinging ob- ject may be made to swing regularly by repeated and timed blows. A doctor will magnetise water and cure his patient there- 339 Esoteric Christianity with. He will magnetise a cloth, and the cloth, laid on the seat of pain, will heal. He will use a powerful magnet, or a current from a galvanic cell, and restore energy to a nerve. In all cases the ether is thrown into motion, and by this the denser physical particles are affected. A similar result accrues when the materi- als used in a Sacrament are acted on by the Word of Power and the Sign of Power. Magnetic changes are caused in the ether of the physical substance, and the subtle coun- terparts are affected according to the know- ledge, purity, and devotion of the celebrant who magnetises—or, in the religious term, consecrates—it. Further, the Word and the Sign of Power summon to the celebra- tion the Angels specially concerned with‘ the materials used and the nature of the act performed, and they lend their powerful aid, pouring their own magnetic energies into the subtle counterparts, and even into the physical ether, thus reinforcing the en- ergies of the celebrant. No one who knows anything of the powers of magnetism can doubt the possibility of the changes in mat- ' 3-10 Sacraments erial objects thus indicated. And if a man of science, who may have no faith in the unseen, has the power to so impregnate water with his own vital energy that it cures a physical disease, why should power of a loftier, though similar, nature be deni- ed to those of saintly life, of noble charac-‘ ter, of knowledge of the invisible? Those who are able to sense the higher forms of magnetism know very well that consecrated objects vary much in their power, and that the magnetic difference is due to the vary- ing knowledge, purity, and spirituality of the priest who consecrates them. Some deny all vital magnetism, and would reject alike the holy water of religion and the magnetised water of medical science. They are consistent, but ignorant. But those who admit the utility of the one, and laugh at the other, show themselves to be not wise but prejudiced, not learned but one-sided, and prove that their want of belief in relig- ion biases their intelligence, predisposing them to reject from the hand of religion that which they accept from the hand of science. A little will be added to this with 341 Esoteric Christianity regard to “sacred objects” generally in Chapter XIV. We thus see that the outer part of the Sacrament is of very great importance. Real changes are made in the materials'l used. They are made the vehicles of en- ergies higher than those which naturally belong to them; persons approaching them, touching them, will have their own etheric and subtle bodies affected by their potent magnetism, and will be brought into a con- dition very receptive of higher influences, being tuned into accord with the lofty Be- ings connected with the Word and the Sign used in consecration; Beings belonging to the invisible world will be present during the sacramental rite, pouring out their be- nign and gracious influences; and thus all who are worthy participants in the cere- mony—sufficiently pure and devoted to be tuned by the vibrations caused—will find their emotions purified and stimulated, their spirituality quickened, and their hearts filled with peace, by coming into such close touch with the unseen realities. 342 CHAPTER XIII SACRAMENTS (continued) WE have now to apply these general princip- les to concrete examples, and to see how they explain and justify the sacramental rites found in all religions. It will be sufficient if we take as examples three out of the Seven Sacraments used in the Church Catholic. Two are recognised as obligatory by all Christians, although extreme Protestants deprive them of their sacramental character, giving them a declaratory and remembrance value only instead of a sacramental; yet even among them the heart of true devotion Wins some- thing of the sacramental blessing the head denies. The third is not recognised as even nominally a Sacrament by Protestant Churches, though it shows the essential signs of a Sacrament, as given in the defin- ition in the Catechism of the Church of 343 Esoteric Christianity England already quoted. 1 The first is that of Baptism; the second that of the Eucharist; the third that of Marriage. The putting of Marriage out of the rank of a Sacrament has much degraded its lofty ideal, and has led to much of that loosening of its tie that thinking men deplore. The Sacrament of Baptism is found in all religions, not only at the entrance into earth-life, but more generally as a ceremony of purification. The ceremony which ad- mits the new-born — or adult —— incomer into a religion has a sprinkling with water as an essential part of the rite, and this was as universal in ancient days as it is now. The Rev. Dr. Giles remarks: “The idea of using water as emblematic of spiritual washing is too obvious to allow surprise at the antiquity of this rite. Dr. Hyde, in his treatise on the Religion of the Ancient Persians, xxxiv. 406, tells us that it pre- vailed among that people. ‘They do not use circumcision for their children, but only baptism, or washing for the purification of the soul. They bring the child to the priest I See ante, p. 327. 344 Sacraments into the church, and place him in front of the sun and fire, which ceremony being completed, they look upon him as more sacred than before. Lord says that they bring the water for this purpose in bark of the Holm-tree; that tree is in truth the Haum of the Magi, of which we spoke be- fore on another occasion. Sometimes also it is otherwise done by immersing him in a large vessel of water, as Tavernier tells us. After such washing, or baptism, the priest imposes on the child the name given by the parents.’ ” 1 A few weeks after the birth of a Hindu child a. ceremony is performed, a part of which consists in sprinkling the child with water—such sprinkling entering into all Hindu worship. Williamson gives authorities for the practice of Baptism in Egypt, Persia, Thibet, Mongolia, Mexico, Peru, Greece, Rome, Scandinavia, and among the Druids.” Some of the prayers quoted are very fine: “I pray that this CG-J lestial water, blue and light blue, may enter into thy body and there live. I pray that it 1 Christian Records, p. 129. 9 The Great La/w, pp. 161—166. 345 Esoteric Christianity may destroy in thee, and put away from thee, all the things evil and adverse that were given to thee before the beginning of the world.” “ 0 child! receive the water of the Lord of the world who is our life: it is to wash and to purify; may these drops re- move the sin which was given to thee be- fore the creation of the world, since all of us are under its power.” Tertullian mentions the very general use of Baptism among non-Christian nations in a passage already quoted,1 and others of the Fathers refer to it. In most religious communities a minor form of Baptism accompanies all religious ceremonies, water being used as a symbol of purification, and the idea being that no man should enter upon worship until he has purified his heart and conscience, the outer washing symbolising the inner lustration. In the Greek and Roman Churches 3 small receptacle for holy water is placed near every door, and every incoming worshipper touches it, making with it on himself the sign of the cross ere he goes onward towards lSee ante, p. 150. 346 Sacraments the altar. On this Robert Taylor remarks: “The baptismal fonts in our Protestant churches, and we need hardly say more es- pecially the little cisterns at the entrance of our Catholic chapels, are not imitations, but an unbroken and never interrupted continu- ation of the same aqua minam’a, or amula, which the learned Montfaucon, in his An- tiquities, shows to have been vases of holy water, which were placed by the heathens at the entrance of their temples, to sprinkle themselves with upon entering those sacred edifices.”1 Whether in the Baptism of initial recep- tion into the Church, or in these minor lustrations, water is the material agent employed, the great cleansing fluid in Nature, and therefore the best symbol for purification. Over this water a mantra is pronounced, in the English ritual repre- sented by the prayer, “Sanctify this water to the mystical washing away of sin,” con- cluding with the formula, “In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen.” This is the Word of ' Diegm's, p. 219. 347 Esoteric Christianity Power, and it is accompanied by the Sign of Power, the Sign of the Cross made over the surface of the water. The Word and the Sign give to the water, as before explained, a property it previously had not, and it is rightly named “holy water.” The dark powers will not approach it; sprinkled on the body it gives a sense of peace, and conveys new spiritual life. When a child is baptised, the spiritual energy given to the water by the Word and the Sign reinforces the spiritual life in the child, and then the Word of Power is again spoken, this time over the child, and the Sign is traced on his forehead, and in his subtle bodies the vibrations are felt, and the summons to guard the life thus sanctified goes forth through the invisible world; for this Sign is at once purifying and protective —purifying by the life that is poured forth through it, protective by the vibrations it sets up in the subtle bodies. Those vibra- tions form a guardian wall against the at- tacks of hostile influences in the invis- ible worlds, and every time that holy water is touched, the Word pronounced, and the 348 Sacraments Sign made, the energy is renewed, the vi- brations are reinforced, both being recog- nised as potent in the invisible worlds, and bringing aid to the operator. In the early Church, Baptism was pre- ceded by a very careful preparation, those admitted to the Church being mostly con- verts from surrounding faiths. A convert passed through three definite stages of in- struction, remaining in each grade till he had mastered its teachings, and he was then admitted to the Church by Baptism. Only after that was he taught the Creed, which was not committed to writing, nor ever re- peated in the presence of an unbeliever; it thus served as a sign of recognition, and a proof of the position of the man who was ’able to recite it, showing that he was a bap- tised member of the Church. How truly in those days the grace conveyed by Baptism was believed in is shown by the custom of death-bed Baptism that grew up. Believ- ing in the reality of Baptism, men and women of the world, unwilling to resign its pleasures or to keep their lives pure from stain, would put off the rite of Baptism 349 Esoteric Christianity until Death’s hand was upon them, so that they might benefit by the sacramental grace, and pass through Death’s portal pure and clean, full of spiritual energy. Against that abuse some of the great Fathers of the Church struggled, and struggled efiectively. There is a quaint story told by one of them, I think'by S. Athanasius, who was a man of caustic wit, not averse to the use of hu- mour in the attempt to make his hearers understand at times the folly or perversity of their behaviour. He told his congrega- tion that he had had a vision, and had gone up to the gateway of heaven, where S. Peter stood as Warder. No pleased smile had he for the visitant, but a frown of stern displeasure. “Athanasius,” said he, “why are you continually sending me these empty bags, carefully sealed up, with nothing in- side?” It was one of the piercing sayings we meet with in Christian antiquity, when these things were real to Christian men, and not mere forms, as they too often are to-day. The custom of Infant Baptism gradually grew up in the Church, and hence the in- 350 Sacraments struction which in the early days preceded Baptism came to be the preparation for Con- firmation, when the awakened mind and in- telligence take up and re-affirm the baptis- mal promises. 'The reception of the infant into the Church is seen to be rightly done, when man’s life is recognised as being lived in the three worlds, and when the Spirit and Soul who have come to inhabit the new-born body are known to be not unconscious and unintelligent, but conscious, intelligent, and potent in the invisible worlds. It is right and just that the “Hidden Man of the heart” 1 should be welcomed to the new stage of his pilgrimage, and that the most helpful influences should be brought to bear upon the vehicle in which he is to dwell, and which he has to mould to his service. If the eyes of men were opened, as were of old those of the servant of Elisha, they would still see the horses and chariots of fire gathered round the mountain where is the prophet of the Lord.2 We come to the second of the Sacraments ‘ 1 Pet. iii. 4. 9 2 Kings vi. 17. 351 Esoteric Christianity selected for study, that of the Sacrifice of the Eucharist, a symbol of the eternal Sacri- fice already explained, the daily sacrifice of the Church Catholic throughout the world imaging that eternal Sacrifice by which the worlds were made, and by which they are evermore sustained. It is to be daily of- fered, as its archetype is perpetually exist- ent, and men in that act take part in the working of the Law of Sacrifice, identify themselves with it, recognise its binding nature, and voluntarily associate themselves with it in its working in the worlds; in such identification, to partake of the mate— rial part of the Sacrament is necessary, if the identification is to be complete, but many of the benefits may be shared, and the influ- ence going forth to the worlds may be increased, by devout worshippers, who asso- ciate themselves mentally, but not physi- cally, with the act. . This great function of Christian worship loses its force and meaning when it is re- garded as nothing more than a mere com- memoration of a past sacrifice, as a pictorial allegory without a deep ensouling truth, as 352 Sacraments a breaking of bread and a pouring out of wine without a sharing in the eternal Sacri- fice. So to see it is to make it a mere shell, a dead picture instead of a living reality. “The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the communion of [the communication of, the sharing in] the blood of Christ?” asks the apostle. “The bread which we break, is it not the communion of the body of Christ?”1 And he goes on to point out that all who eat of a sacrifice become par- takers of a common nature, and are joined into a single body, which is united to, shares the nature of, that Being who is present in the sacrifice. A fact of the invisible world is here concerned, and he speaks with the authority of knowledge. Invisible Beings pour of their essence into the materials used in any sacramental rite, and those who par- take of those materials—which become assimilated in the body and enter into its ingredients—are thereby united to those whose essence is in it, and they all share a common nature. This is true when we take even ordinary food from the hand of an- 11 Cor. x. 16. 23 353 Esoteric Christianity other—part of his nature, his vital magnet- ism, mingles with our own; how much more true then when the food has been solemnly and purposely impregnated with higher magnetisms, which affect the subtle bodies as well as the physical. If we would under- stand the meaning and use of the Eucharist we must realise these facts of the invisible worlds, and we must see in it a link between the earthly and the heavenly, as well as an act of the universal worship, a co-operation, an association, with the Law of Sacrifice, else it loses the greater part of its signifi- cance. The employment of bread and wine as the materials for this Sacrament—like the use of water in the Sacrament of Baptism—is of very ancient and general usage. The Per- sians offered bread and wine to Mithra, and similar ofierings were made in Thibet and Tartary. Jeremiah speaks of the cakes and the drink offered to the Queen of Heaven by the Jews in Egypt, they taking part in the Egyptian worshipfll In Genesis we read that Melchisedek, the King-Initiate, used 1 J er. xliv. 354 Sacraments bread and wine in the blessing of Abra- ham.1 In the various Greek Mysteries bread and wine were used, and Williamson mentions their use also among the Mexi- cans, Peruvians, and Druids.2 The bread stands as the general symbol for the food that builds up the body, and the wine as symbol of the blood, regarded as the life-fluid, “for the life of the flesh is in the blood.” 3 Hence members of a family are said to share the same blood, and to be of the blood of a person is to be of his kin. Hence, also, the old ceremonies of the “blood-covenant”; when a stranger was made one of a family or of a tribe, some drops of blood from a member were trans- fused into his veins, or he drank them —usually mingled with water—and was thenceforth considered as being a born member of the family or tribe, as being of its blood. Similarly, in the Eucharist, the worshippers partake of the bread, symbol- ising the body, the nature, of the Christ, 1 Gen. xiv. 18, 19. 9 The Great Law, pp. 177—181, 185. 3Lev. xvii. 11. 355 Esoteric Christianity and of the wine, symbolising the blood, the life of the Christ, and become of His kin, one with Him. . The Word of Power is the formula “This is My Body,” “This is My Blood.” This it is which works the change which we shall consider in a moment, and transforms the materials into vehicles of spiritual energies. The Sign of Power is the hand extended over the bread and the wine, and the Sign of the Cross should be made upon them, though this is not always done among Pro- testants. These are the outer essentials of the Sacrament of the Eucharist. It is important to understand the change which takes place in this Sacrament, for it is more than the magnetisation previously explained, though this also is wrought. We have here a special instance of a general law. By the occultist, a visible thing is re- garded as the last, the physical, expression of an invisible truth. Everything is the physical expression of. a thought. An ob- ject is but an idea externalised and densi- fied. All the objects in the world are Divine 356 Sacraments ideas expressed in physical matter. That being so, the reality of the object does not lie in the outer form but in the inner life, in ~the idea that has shaped and moulded the matter into an expression of itself. In the higher worlds, the matter being very subtle and plastic, shapes itself very swiftly to the idea, and changes form as the thought changes. As matter becomes denser, heav- ier, it changes form less readily, more slowly, until, in the physical world, the changes are at their slowest in consequence of the resistance of the dense matter of which the physical world is composed. Let sufficient time be given, however, and even this heavy matter changes under the press- ure of the ensouling idea, as may be seen by the graving on the face of the expressions of habitual thoughts and emotions. This is the truth which underlies what is called the doctrine of Transubstantiation, so extraordinarily misunderstood by the ordin- ary Protestant. But such is the fate of occult truths when they are presented to the ignorant. The “substance” that is changed is the idea which makes a thing to be what 357 Esoteric Christianity it is; “bread” is not mere flour and water; the idea which governs the mixing, the manipulation, of the flour and water, that is the “substance” which makes it “ bread,” and the flour and the water are what are technically called the “accidents,” the ar- rangements of matter that give form to the idea. With a different idea, or substance, flour and water would take a different form, as indeed they do when assimilated by the body. So also chemists have discovered that the same kind and the same number of chemical atoms may be arranged in differ- ent ways and thus become entirely differ- ent things in their properties, though the materials are unchanged; such “isomeric compounds” are among the most interest- ing of modern chemical discoveries; the ar- rangement of similar atoms under different ideas gives different bodies. What, then, is this change of substance in the materials used in the Eucharist? The idea that makes the object has been changed; in their normal condition bread and wine are food-stuffs, expressive of the divine ideas of nutritive objects, objects 358 Sacraments fitted for the building up of bodies. The new idea is that of the Christ nature and life, fitted for the building up of the spirit- ual nature and life of man. That is the change of substance; the object remains unchanged in its “accidents,” its physical material, but the subtle matter connected with it has changed under the pressure of the changed idea, and new properties are imparted by this change. They affect the subtle bodies of the participants, and attune them to the nature and life of the Christ. On the “worthiness” of the particip- ant depends the extent to which he can be thus attuned. The unworthy participant, subjected to the same process, is injuriously affected by it, for his nature, resisting the pressure, is bruised and rent by the forces to which it is unable to respond, as an object may be broken into pieces by vibrations which it is unable to reproduce. The worthy partaker, then, becomes one with the Sacrifice, with the Christ, and so becomes also at one with, united to, the di- vine Life, which is the Father of the Christ. 359 Esoteric Christianity Inasmuch as the act of Sacrifice on the side of form is the yielding up of the life it sep- arates from others to be part of the com- mon Life, the oflering of the separated channel to be a channel of the one Life, so by that surrender the sacrificer becomes one with God. It is the giving itself of the lower to be a part of the higher, the yield- ing of the body as an instrument of the separated will to be an instrument of the divine Will, the presenting of men’s “bodies as a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God.”1 Thus it has been truly taught in the Church that those who rightly take part in the Eucharist enjoy a partaking of the Christ-life poured out for men. The trans- muting of the lower into the higher is the object of this, as of all, Sacraments. The changing of the lower force by its union with the loftier is what is sought by those who participate in it; and those who know the inner truth, and realise the fact of the higher life, may in any religion, by means of its sacraments, come into fuller, com- pleter touch with the divine Life that up- ‘ Rom. xii. 1. 360 Sacraments holds the worlds, if they bring to the rite the receptive nature, the act of faith, the opened heart, which are necessary for the possibilities of the Sacrament to be realised. The Sacrament of Marriage shows out the marks of a Sacrament as clearly and as defi- nitely as do Baptism and the Eucharist. Both the outer sign and the inward grace are there. The material is the Ring—the circle which is the symbol of the everlasting. The Word of Power is the ancient formula, “In the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.” The Sign of Power is the joining of hands, symbolising the joining of the lives. These make up the outer essentials of the Sacrament. The inner grace is the union of mind with mind, of heart with heart, which makes possible the realisation of the unity of spirit, without which Marriage is no Marriage, but a mere temporary conjunction of bodies. The giving and receiving of the ring, the pronouncing of the formula, the joining of hands, these form the pictorial allegory; if the inner grace be not received, if the par- ticipants do not open themselves to it by 361 Esoteric Christianity their wish for the union of their whole na- tures, the Sacrament for them loses its beneficent properties, and becomes a mere form. But Marriage has a yet deeper meaning; religions with one voice have proclaimed it to be the image on earth of the union be- tween the earthly and the heavenly, the union between God and man. And even then its significance is not exhausted, for it is the image of the relation between Spirit and Matter, between the Trinity and the Universe. So deep, so far-reaching, is the meaning of the joining of man and woman in Marriage. Herein the man stands as representing the Spirit, the Trinity of Life, and the woman as representing the Matter, the Trinity of formative material. One gives life, the other receives and nourishes it. They are complementary to each other, two inseparable halves of one whole, neither ex- isting apart from the other. As Spirit im- plies Matter and Matter Spirit, so husband implies wife and wife husband. As the ab- stract Existence manifests in two aspects, as 362 Sacraments a duality of Spirit and Matter, neither inde- pendent of the other, but each coming into manifestation with the other, so is humanity manifested in two aspects—husband and wife, neither able to exist apart, and ap- pearing together. They are not twain but one, a dual-faced unity. God and the Uni- verse are imaged in Marriage; thus closely linked are husband and wife. It is said above that Marriage is also an image of the union between God and man, between the universal and the individualised Spirits. This symbolism is used in all the great scriptures of the world—Hindu, He- brew, Christian. And it has been extended by taking the individualised Spirit as a Na- tion or a Church, a collection of such Spirits knit into a unity. So Isaiah declared to Israel: “Thy Maker is thine Husband; the Lord of hosts is His name . . . As the bridegroom rejoiceth over the bride, so shall thy God rejoice over thee.”1 So S. Paul wrote that the mystery of Marriage repre- sented Christ and the Church.2 ‘Isaiah liv. 5; lxii. 5. . ‘2 Eph. v. 23—32. 363 Esoteric Christianity If we think of Spirit and Matter as latent, unmanifested, then we see no production; manifested together, there is evolution. And so when the halves of humanity are not manifested as husband and wife, there is no production of fresh life. Moreover, they should be united in order that there may be a growth of life in each, a. swifter evolution, a more rapid progress, by the half that each can give to each, each sup- plying what the other lacks. The twain should be blended into one, setting forth the spiritual possibilities of man. And they show forth also the perfect Man, in whose nature Spirit and Matter are both com- pletely developed and perfectly balanced, the divine Man who unites in his own person husband and wife, the male and female elements in nature, as “God and Man are one Christ.” 1 Those who thus study the Sacrament of Marriage will understand why religions have ever regarded Marriage as indissolu- ble, and have thought it better that a few ill-matched pairs should suffer for a few 1 Athanasian Creed. 364 Sacraments years than that the ideal of true Marriage should be permanently lowered for all. A nation must choose whether it Will adopt as its national ideal a spiritual or an earthly bond in Marriage, the seeking in it of a spiritual unity, or the regarding it as merely a physical union. The one is the religious idea of Marriage as a Sacrament; the other the materialistic idea of it as an ordinary terminable contract. The student of the Lesser Mysteries must ever see in it a sacra- mental rite. 365 CHAPTER XIV REVELATION ALL the religions known to us are the custo- dians of Sacred Books, and appeal to these books for the settlement of disputed quest- ions. They always contain the teachings given by the Founder of the religion, or by later teachers regarded as possessing super- human knowledge. Even when a religion gives birth to many discordant sects, each sect will cling to the Sacred Canon, and will put upon its word the interpretation which best fits in with its own peculiar doctrines. However widely may be separated in belief the extreme Roman Catholic and the ex- treme Protestant, they both appeal to the same Bible. However far apart may be the philosophic Vedantin and the most illit- erate Vallabhacharya, they both regard the same Vedas as supreme. However bitterly opposed to each other may be the Shias and 366 Revelation the Sunnis, they both regard as sacred the same Kurdn. Controversies and quarrels may arise as to the meaning of texts, but the Book itself, in every case, is looked on with the utmost reverence. And rightly so; for all such books contain fragments of The Revelation, selected by One of the great Ones who hold it in trust; such a fragment is embodied in what down here we call 3. Revelation, or a Scripture, and some part of the world rejoices in it as in a treasure of vast value. The fragment is chosen accord- ing to the needs of the time, the capacity of the people to whom it is given, the type of the race whom it is intended to instruct. It is generally given in a peculiar form, in which the outer history, or story, or song, or psalm, or prophecy, appears to the super- ficial or ignorant reader to be the whole book; but in these deeper meanings lie con- cealed, sometimes in numbers, sometimes in words constructed on a hidden plan—— a cypher, in fact—sometimes in symbols, recognisable by the instructed, sometimes in allegories written as histories, and in many other ways. These Books, indeed, have 367 Esoteric Christianity something of a sacramental character about them, an outer form and an inner life, an outer symbol and an inner truth. Those only can explain the hidden meaning Who have been trained by those instructed in it; hence the dictum of S. Peter that “no proph- ecy of the Scripture is of any private in- terpretation.”1 The elaborate explanations of texts of the Bible, With which the vol- umes of patristic literature abound, seem fanciful and overstrained to the prosaic modern mind. The play upon numbers, upon letters, the apparently fantastic inter- pretations of paragraphs that, on the face of them, are ordinary historical statements of a simple character, exasperate the modern reader, Who demands to have his facts pre- sented clearly and coherently, and above all, requires What he feels to be solid ground under his feet. He declines absolutely to follow the light-footed mystic over What seem to him to be quaking morasses, in a Wild chase after dancing Will-o’-the-Wisps, Which appear and disappear With bewilder- ing and irrational caprice. Yet the men 12 Pet. i. 20. 368 Revelation who wrote these exasperating treatises were men of brilliant intellect and calm judg- ment, the master-builders of the Church. And to those who read them aright they are still full of hints and suggestions, and indi- cate many an obscure pathway that leads to the goal of knowledge, and that might otherwise be missed. We have already seen that Opigen, one of the sanest of men, and versed in occult knowledge, teaches that the Scriptures are three-fold, consisting of Body, Soul, and Spirit.1 He says that the Body of the Scrip- tures is made up of the outer words of the histories and the stories, and he does not hesitate to say that these are not literally true, but are only stories for the instruction of the ignorant. He even goes so far as to remark that statements are made in those stories that are obviously untrue, in order that the glaring contradictions that lie on the surface may stir people up to inquire as to the real meaning of these impossible rela- tions. He says that so long as men are ig- norant, the Body is enough for them; it See ante, p. 101. 24 369 Esoteric Christianity conveys teaching, it gives instruction, and they do not see the self-contradictions and impossibilities involved in the literal state- ments, and therefore are not disturbed by them. As the mind grows, as the intellect develops, these contradictions and impossi- bilities strike the attention, and bewilder the student; then he is stirred up to seek for a deeper meaning, and he begins to find the Soul of the Scriptures. That Soul is the re- ward of the intelligent seeker, and he es- capes from the bonds of the letter that kill- . ethfll The Spirit of the Scriptures may only be seen by the spiritually enlightened man; only those in whom the Spirit is evolved can understand the spiritual meaning: “the things of God knoweth no man but the Spirit of God . . . which things also we speak, not in the words which man’s wis- dom teacheth, but which the Holy Ghost teacheth. ” ’ The reason for this method of Revelation is not far to seek; it is the only way in which one teaching can be made available 12 Cor. iii. 6. 9 1 Cor. ii. 11, 13. 370 Revelation for minds at different stages of evolution, and thus train not only those to whom it is immediately given, but also those who, later in time, shall have progressed beyond those to whom the Revelation was first made. Man is progressive; the outer meaning given long ago to unevolved men must needs be very limited, and unless something deeper and fuller than this outer meaning were hidden within it, the value of the Scripture would perish when a few millen- nia had passed away. Whereas by this method of successive meanings it is given a perennial value, and evolved men may find in it hidden treasures, until the day when, possessing the whole, they no longer need the part. The world-Bibles, then, are fragments—— fragments of Revelation, and therefore are rightly described as Revelation. The next deeper sense of the word de- scribes the mass of teaching held by the great Brotherhood of spiritual Teachers in trust for men; this teaching is embodied in books, written in symbols, and in these is contained an account of kosmic laws, of the 371 Esoteric Christianity —- principles on which the kosmos is founded, of the methods by which it is evolved, of all the beings that compose it, of its past, its present, its future; this is The Revelation. This is the priceless treasure which the Guardians of humanity hold in charge, and from which they select, from time to time, fragments to form the Bibles of the world. Thirdly, the Revelation, highest, fullest, best, is the Self-unveiling of Deity in the kosmos, the revealing of attribute after at- tribute, power after power, beauty after beauty, in all the various forms which in their totality compose the universe. He shows His splendour in the sun, His infinity in the star-flecked fields of space, His strength in mountains, His purity in snow- clad peaks and translucent air, His energy in rolling ocean-billows, His beauty in tum- bling mountain-torrent, in smooth, clear lake, in cool, deep forest and in sunlit plain, His fearlessness in the hero, His patience in the saint, His tenderness in mother-love, His protecting care in father and in king, His wisdom in the philosopher, His know- ledge in the scientist, His healing power in 372 Revelation the physician, His justice in the judge, His wealth in the merchant, His teaching power in the priest, His industry in the artisan. He whispers to us in the breeze, He smiles on us in the sunshine, He chides us in dis- ease, He stimulates us, now by success and now by failure. Everywhere and in every- thing He gives us glimpses of Himself to lure us on to love Him, and He hides Him- self that we may learn to stand alone. To know Him everywhere is the true Wisdom; to love Him everywhere is the true Desire; to serve Him everywhere is the true Action. This Self-revealing of God is the highest Revelation; all others are subsidiary and partial. The inspired man is the man to whom some of this Revelation has come by the direct action of the universal Spirit on the separated Spirit that is His offspring, who has felt the illuminating influence of Spirit on Spirit. No man knows the truth so that he‘ can 'never lose it, no man knews the truth so that he can never doubt it, until the Rev- elation has come to him as though he stood alone on earth, until the Divine without has 373 Esoteric Christianity spoken to the Divine within, in the temple of the human heart, and the man thus knows by himself and not by another. In a lesser degree a man is inspired when one greater than he stimulates within him powers which as yet are normally inactive, or even takes possession of him, temporarily using his body as a vehicle. Such an illu- minated man, at the time of his inspiration, can speak that which is beyond his know- ledge, and utter truths till then unguessed. Truths are sometimes thus poured out through a human channel for the helping of the world, and some One greater than the speaker sends down his life into the. human vehicle, and they rush forth from human lips; then a great teacher speaks yet more greatly than he knows, the Angel of the Lord having touched his lips with fire.1 Such are the Prophets of the race, who at some periods have spoken with overwhelm- ing conviction, with clear insight, with com- plete understanding of the spiritual needs of man. Then the words live with a life im- lIsaiah vi. 6, 7. 374 Revelation mortal, and the speaker is truly a messenger from God. The man who has thus known can never again quite lose the memory of the knowledge, and he carries within his heart a certainty which can never quite dis- appear. The light may vanish and the dark- ness come down upon him; the gleam from heaven may fade and clouds may surround him; threat, question, challenge, may as- sail him; but within his heart there nestles the Secret of Peace—he knows, or knows3 that he has known. That remembrance of true inspiration, that reality of the hidden life, has been put into beautiful and true words by Frederick Myers, in his well-known poem, S. Paul. The apostle is speaking of his own experi- ence, and is trying to give articulate expres- sion to that which he remembers; he is fig- ured as unable to thoroughly reproduce his knowledge, although he knows and his cert- ainty does not waver: So, even I, athirst for His inspiring, I, who have talked with Him, forget again; Yes, many days with sobs and with desiring, Ofier to God a patience and a pain. 375 Esoteric Christianity Then through the mid complaint of my confession, Then through the pang and passion of my prayer, Leaps with a start the shock of His possession, Thrills me and touches, and the Lord is there. Lo, if some pen should write upon your rafter Mene and Mene in the folds of flame, Think ye could any memories thereafter Wholly retrace the couplct as it came? Lo, if some strange intelligible thunder Sang to the earth the secret of a star, Scarce should ye catch, for terror and for wonder, Shreds of the story that was pealed so far! Scarccly I catch the words of His revealing, Hardly I hear Him, dimly understand. Only the power that is within me pealing Lives on my lips, and beckons to my hand. Whoso hath felt the Spirit of the Highest Cannot confound, nor doubt Him, nor deny; Yea, with one voice, 0 world, though thou deniest, Stand thou on that side, for on this am I. Rather the world shall doubt when her retrieving Pours in the rain and rushes from the sod; Rather than he in whom the great conceiving Stirs in his soul to quicken into God. Nay, though thou then shouldst strike him from his glory, Blind and tormented, maddened and alone, E’en on the cross would he maintain his story, Yes, and in Hell would whisper, “I have known.” Those who have in any sense realised that 376 Revelation God is around them, in them, and in every- thing, Will be able to understand how a place or an object may become “sacred” by a slight objectivisation of this perennial uni- versal Presence, so that those become able to sense Him who do not normally feel His omnipresence. This is generally effected by some highly advanced man, in Whom the inner Divinity is largely unfolded, and Whose subtle bodies are therefore responsive to the subtler vibrations of consciousness. Through such a man, or by such a man, spiritual en- ergies may be poured forth, and these will unite themselves With his pure vital magnet~ ism. He can then pour them forth on any object, and its other and bodies of subtler matter will become attuned to his vibra- tions, as before explained, and further, the Divinity Within it can more easily manifest. Such an object becomes “ magnetised,” and, if this be strongly done, the object will itself become a magnetic centre, capable in turn of magnetising those who approach it. Thus a body electrified by an electric machine will affect other bodies near Which it may be placed. 37 7 Esoteric Christianity An object thus rendered “sacred” is a very useful adjunct to prayer and medita- tion. The subtle bodies of the worshipper are attuned to its high vibrations, and he finds himself quieted, soothed, pacified, with- out effort on his own part. He is thrown into a condition in which prayer and medi- tation are easy and fruitful instead of diffi- cult and barren, and an irksome exorcise be- comes insensibly delightful. If the object be a representation of some sacred Person— a Crucifix, a Madonna and Child, an Angel, 3 Saint—there is a yet further gain. The Being represented, if his magnetism has been thrown into the image by the appropriate Word and Sign of Power, can reinforce that magnetism with a very slight expendi- ture of spiritual energy, and may thus in- fluence the devotee, or even show him- self through the image, when otherwise he would not have done so. For in the spirit- ual world economy of forces is observed, and a small amount of energy will be ex- pended where a larger would be withheld. An application of these same occult laws may be made to explain the use of all con- 378 Revelation secrated objects—relics, amulets, &c. They are all magnetised objects, more or less powerful, or useless, according to the know- ledge, purity, and spirituality of the person who magnetises them. Places may similarly be made sacred, by the living in them of saints, Whose pure magnetism, radiating from them, attunes the whole atmosphere to peace-giving vibra- tions. - Sometimes holy men, or Beings from the higher worlds, will directly magnetise a certain place, as in the case mentioned in the Fourth Gospel, where an Angel came at a. certain season and touched the water, giv- ing it healing qualities.l In such places even careless worldly men will sometimes feel the blessed influence, and will be tem- porarily softened and inclined toward higher things. The divine Life in each man is ever trying to subdue the form, and mould it into an expression of itself; and it is easy to see how that Life will be aided by the form being thrown into vibrations sympathetic with those of a more highly evolved Being, its own efiorts being reinforced by a. stronge‘r 'S. John v. 4. 379 Esoteric Christianity power. The outer recognition of this effect is a sense of quiet, calm, and peace; the mind loses its restlessness, the heart its anxiety. Any one who observes himself will find that some places are more conducive to calm, to meditation, to religious thought, to worship, than others. In a room, a. build- ing, where there has been a great deal of worldly thought, of frivolous conversation, of mere rush of ordinary worldly life, it is far harder to quiet the mind and to concen- trate the thought, than in a place where religious thought has been carried on year after year, century after century; there the mind becomes calm and tranquillised insen- sibly, and that which would have demanded serious effort in the first place is done with- out eflort in the second. This is the rationale of places of pilgrim- age, of temporary retreats into seclusion; the man turns inward to seek the God within him, and is aided by the atmosphere created by thousands of others, who before him. have sought the same in the same place. For in such a place there is not only the magneti- sation produced by a single saint, or by the 380 Revelation visit of some great Being of the invisible world; each person, who visits the spot with a heart full of reverence and devotion, and is attuned to its vibrations, reinforces those vibrations with his own life, and leaves the spot better than it was when he came to it. Magnetic energy slowly disperses, and a sacred object or place becomes gradually demagnetised if put aside or deserted. It becomes more magnetised as it is used or frequented. But the presence of the ignor- ant scofler injures such objects and places, by setting up antagonistic vibrations which weaken those already existing there. As a wave of sound may be met by another which extinguishes it, and the result is silence, so do the vibrations of the scoffing thought weaken or extinguish the vibrations of the reverent and loving one. The effect pro- duced will, of course, vary with the relative strengths of the vibrations, but the mis— chievous one cannot be without result, for the laws of vibration are the same in the higher worlds as in the physical, and thought vibrations are the expression of real ener- gies. 381 Esoteric Christianity The reason and the effect of the consecra- tion of churches, chapels, cemeteries, will now be apparent. The act of consecration is not the mere public setting aside of a place for a particular purpose; it is the mag- netisation'of the place for the benefit of all those who frequent it. For the visible and the invisible worlds are inter-related, inter- woven, each with each, and those can best serve the visible by whom the energies of the invisible can be wielded. 382 AFTER WORD WE have reached the end of a small book on a great subject, and have only lifted a corner of the Veil that hides the Virgin of Eternal Truth from the careless eyes of men. The hem of her garment only has been seen, heavy with gold, richly dight with pearls. Yet even this, as it waves slowly, breathes out celestial fragrances—the sandal and rose-attar of fairer worlds than ours. What should be the unimaginable glory, if the Veil were lifted, and we saw the splendour of the Face of the divine Mother, and in Her arms the Child who is the very Truth? Be- fore that Child the Seraphim ever veil their faces; who then of mortal birth may look on Him and live? Yet since in man abides His very Self, who shall forbid him to pass within the Veil, and to see with “open face the glory of the Lord”? From the Cave to highest Heaven; 383 Esoteric Christianity such was the pathway of the Word made Flesh, and known as the Way of the Cross. Those who share the manhood share also the Divinity, and may tread where He has trodden. “What Thou art, That am I.” PEACE TO ALL BEINGS. 384 INDEX Acts of the Apostles referred to A Kempis, Thomas Afterword . Allegory . Allegories, Old Testament . A11- Wide Consciousness Ammonius Saccas . Animal Symbols of Zodiac . Anselm and Redemption Answers to Player Answers to Subjective Prayer, Apollonius of Tyana Apostolic Fathers Appearances of Divine Beings Aquinas, Thomas A? toms of the F0217 th Centm y, quoted Aristotle, Effect on Mediaeval Christianity . Ascension, The Ascension and Solar Myth Ascension of the Christ Asiatic Researches, quoted Aspects of the ONE Athanasius, Story of Athanasian Creed, quoted Atlantis, Continent of At- --one ment . Atonement as one of Lesser Mysteries . “ Early Church on the 25 385 PAGE . 279 . 113 . 383 . 66 . 120 279 et seq. . 28 . 164 . 194 . 274 . 288 31 69 . 92 . 110 . 101 . 111 . 230, 249 . 230 . 248 . 256 . 259 . 350 . 261, 364 . 18 . 208 . 199 . 194 Index PAGE Atonement, Calvinistic View of . . . . . 196 “ Edwards on the . . . . . 195 “ Flavel on the . . . . . . 195 “ Luther’s Views on the . . . . 195 “ Dr. McLeod Campbell on the . . . 197 “ F. D. Maurice on the . . . . 198 “ Vicarious and Substitutionary. . .194 “ Views of Dwight, Jeune, Jenkyn, Liddon, “ Ow en, Stroud, and Thomson .,196 197 “ Truth underlying the Doctrine of . . 198 “ Pamphlet on, quoted . . . . 196 “ Nineteenth Century quoted on . . 204 Augoeides . . . . . . . . . 27 Barnabas . . . . . . . . 7O Baptism, A Mantra in . . . . . . 347 A Minor Fo11n of . . . . . 346 “ Belief in Death-bed . . . . . 349 “ Infant . . . . . . 350 “ In the Early Church . . . . . 350 “ In Other Religions . . . . . 346 “ of Initiate . . . . . . 53 “ of Holy Ghost and Fire . . . . 187 “ of Jesus . . . . . . . 132 “ of the Christ . . . . . . 185 “ Tertullian on . . . . . . 346 Beatific Vision, The . . . . . . 94, 293 Bernard of Clairvaux . . . . . . . 110 Bel- fires . . . . . . . 163 Bhagaead Gitd, referred to . . 50, 200, 268, 304, 316 Bible Account of Creation . . . . . . 178 Birth, Second . . . . . . 246 Blavatsky, H. P., referred to . . . . . 126 Blood of Christ symbolised 1n Eucharist . . . 355 Behme, Jacob . . . . . . . . 114 386 Index PAGE Body, Causal . . . . . . . 238, 246 Desire, Changcs' 1n . . . . . . 243 “ Meaning of a . . . . . . . 233 “ Mental . . . . . . . . 235 “ “ Building of . . . . . . 244 “ Natural or Physical . . . . . 234 “ Natural, of St. Paul . . . . . 236 “ of Bliss . . . . . . . . 239 “ of Desire . . . . . . 235 “ Physical, Changes 1n . . . . . 242 “ Resurrection . . . . . . . 239 Body, Spiritual . . . . . . . 237 Bonaventura, Saint . . . . . . . 110 Book of Job, quoted . . . . . 266, 330 “ of the Dead, referred to . . . . . 337 “ of Nu-,mbers quoted . . . . . . 268 “ of Wisdom, quoted . . . . . 264 Bread, General Symbol 1n Sacraments . . . 355 Bfihaddranyakopdnishat, quoted . . . 49, 200 Brotherhood of Great Teachers . . . . . 9 Bruno, Giordano, referred to . 5, 111, 114, 223, 320 Buddha, Birth Story of . . . . . . 162 Buddhist Trinity . . . . . . . 256 Calvinistic Doctrine . . . . . . . 196 Cardinal Nicolas of Cusa . . . . . . 114 Cathari, The, referred to . . . . . . 112 Cave of Initiation . . . . . 185 Celsus—Controversy with Origen . . . . 86 Uhhdndogyopdm'shat, quoted . . . . . 251 Chréstos and Christos . . . . . 173 Christ as Hierophant of Mysteries . . . . 230 “ Baptism of . . . . . . . 185 “ Crucifixion of . . . . . . . 181 “ Disciples of . . . . . . . 222 387 Index PAGE Christ in the Spiritual Body . . . . . 136 “ Life of the . . . . . . . 215 “ of the Mysteries . . . . . . 190 “ The . . . . . . . . 131, 133 “ the Crucified . . . . . . . 181 “ the Historical . . . . . . 119, 139 “ the Kosmic . . . . . . . 177 “ the Mystic . . . . . . . 169 “ the Mythic . . . . . . . 144 “ Sufierings of the . . . . . . 221 Christian Creed, referred to . . . . 179, 180 “ “ quoted . . . . 205, 206, 228 Christian Disciples—their work . . . . . 222 Christian Recovfls, quoted . . . . . . 345 Christian Symbols, &c., not unique . . . . 146 Christianity has the Gnosis . . . . . 36 Christmas Day . . . 157, 159, 160 Christmas Festiv,al lightly regarded . . . 163 Clarlcc’ s Anti-Azccnc Library, quoted . viii, 21, 58, 70, 71, 72, 73, 76, 79 et seq., 86, 88, 90 et seq., 103,149, 150, 264 Classes of Prayer . . . . . . 281 Clement of Alexandria, quoted . . . viii, 21 “ “ 1eferred to . . . . 73 “ “ on the Gnosis . . 82, 83 “ “ on Scripture Allegories . 82 “ “ on Symbols . . . 79 “ “ and Catechetical School . 72 “ “ a Pupil of Pantzenus . . 72 Colossians, Epistles to, referred to . 58, 64, 80, 17 6 Comparative Mythologists . . . . . 7 “ “ Theory of . . . 7 “ Religionists . . . . . 7, 8 “ Mythology . . . . . . 146 Consecrated Objects . . . . . . . 379 388 Index PAGE Consecration of Churches, Cemeteries, &c. . . 382 Constant, Alphonse Louis . . . . . . 116 Conversion, Phenomenon of . . . 311 et seq. Corinthians, @istles to, quoted . . x, 6, 32, 55, 63, 66, 123, 174, 176, 231, 238, 239, 240, 249, 251, 268, 353, 370 Creed, taught after Baptism in Early Church . . 349 Uruden’s Concordance, quoted . . . . . 33 Our Deus Homo of Anselm . . . . . 194 Dangers to Christianity . . . . . . 124 Dark Powers in Nature . . . . . 185. 186 Dean Milman, quoted . . . . 253 et seq. Death of Solar Heroes . . . . . . 165 De Principa’is of Origen . . . . . 100, 101 Deuteronomy, quoted . . . . . . 95, 251 Diegesz's of R. Taylor, quoted . . . . . 347 Die Deutsche Theologie . . . . . . 113 Dionysius the Areopagite . . . . . . 108 Disappearance of the Mysteries . . . . . 182 Disciples, The . . . . . . . . 133 “ Work of the . . . . . . 222 “ Writings of the . . . . . 139 Divine Beings, Appearance 1n Mysteries . . . 92 “Divine Grace,” What it is . . . . . . 223 “ Ideation . . . . . . . . 356 “ Illumination . . . . . . . 374 “ Incarnations . . . . . 271, 272 Duality of Manifested Existence . . . . 234 “ of Second Person of Trinity . . . . 263 Easter Festival . . . . . . . . 158 Eckhart, Teachings of . . . . . . 112 Edwards on the Atonement . . . . . 195 Egypt and the Mysteries . . . . . . 129 389 Index. PAGE Elizabeth, Saint . . . . . . 112 Encyclopcedz’a Britannica, referred to . . 22, 23, 115 “ “ quoted . . 110 et seq. Io 'plzesz'ans, Epistle to, quoted . . 57, 64, 67, 363 Epzstlc of James, quoted . . . . 2.74 “ of Peter, quoted . . 64, 120, 193, 351, 368 Esoteric Christianity, Popular Denial of . . . 2 “ Teaching in Early Church . . . . 2 Essentials of Religion . . . . . . . 4 Eucharist, Bread and Wine of . . . . . 354 “ Change of Substance 1n . . . 358 “ connected with Law of Sacrifice . . 354 “ Meaning and Use of . . . . . 354 “ Sacrifice of. . . . . . 352 “ Unworthy Participants 1n . . . . 359 Erodus, Book of, quoted . . . . . . 90 Extasy . . . . . . . . 293 Faith Needed for Forgiveness . . . . . 310 Fathers, The Christian, on Scriptures . . . 368 Festivals . . . . . . . . 146 Fish Symbol 111 Religions . . . . . . 164 Flavel on Atonement . . . . . . . 195 Fludd, Robert . . . . . . . . 115 Forgiveness of Sins . . . . . . . 299 “ in Lesser My stelies . . . . . 321 “ in most. Religions . . 301 “ ultimately 1efers to Post- Mor tom Penalties 305 Fourth Manifestation Feminine . . . . . 259 “ Pelson . . . . . . . 261 Francois de Sales, Saint . . . . . . 114 Free thinking 1n Christianity . . . . . 122 F'r'z'encis of God in the Oberland . . . . . 112 Friends, Society of . . . . . . . 116 Future of Christianity . . . . . . 40 390 Index PAGE Galatians, Epistle to, quoted . . 63, 64, 65, 66, 123 Genesis, quoted . . . 18, 178, 266, 269, 277, 355 Germain, Comte de S. . . . . . . 116 Gestures in Sacraments . . . . 336 Gibbon’ s “Decline and F (ll of R Empire” . . . 161 Giles, Rev. Dr., quoted . . . . .344 Gnosis, The . . . . . . . viii, 9, 107 “ “ in Christianity . . . . . 36 Gnostic, The, of S. Clement . . . . 82 et seq. “ Gnosties and their Remains ” . . . . . 161 Gods in the Mysteries . . . . . . 24 Grades of Hierarchies . . . . . . 328 Grand Lodge of Central Asia . . . . . 31 Greek Cross, The . . , , , . . 265 Guyon, Mme. de . . . . . . . . 115 Haug, Dr., Essay on Parsis, cited .201 Hebrews, Epistle to, quoted . .53, 67,80,90, 174, 175, 204, 215, 221, 222, 245, 268, 272, 277 Hebrew Trinity . . . . . . . . 252 Hell-fire Dogma, The . . . . . . . 48 Heroic Enthusiast, The, quoted . . . . 3.21 Hidden God, The . . . .206 “ Meanings in Jewish and Christian Script- ures . . . . . . . 99 “ Side 1n Christianity . . . . . 36 “ Teaching in all Religions . . . . 20 Hierarchies of Divine Beings . . . . . 328 “ of Superhuman Beings . . . . 23 Hindu Trinity, The . . . . . . . 255 History versus Myth . . . . . . . 152 Holy Spirit as Creator . . . . . . 266 Holy Water . . 341, 346, 348 Human Evolution repeats Kosmic Process . . . 269 Huxley, T. H., quoted . . . . . . 280 391 Index PAGE Hyde, Dr., quoted . . . . . . . 344 Hymn to Demeter . . . . . . . 21 Iamblichus, 0n the Mysteries, quoted . . 22, 23, 24, 25, 27, 28, 29, 294 et seq. Iamblichus, Life of Pythagoras, referred to . . 28 Ignatius . . . . . 70 Incarnation of Logos . . . . . . . 178 Initiation and Rebirth . . . . . . 51, 53 “ Cave of . . . . . . . 185 “ Ceremonies of . . . . 246 et seq. “ Conditions of . . . . . . 172 “ Mount of . . . . . . . 90 Inspilation, True . . . . . 375 Intelligences 111 Invisible Worlds . . . . 277 Inviolability of Law . . . . . . . 302 Invisible Helpels . . . 277 Invisible \Vorlds interpenetrate the Visible . . 277 Irenaeus, A thZIHt 116768268 refelred to . . . 104 Isaiah, quoted . . . . . 209, 293, 363, 374 Isomeric Compounds . . . . . . . 358 Jeremiah, Book of, quoted . . . . . 260, 354 Jesus at Mount Serbal . . . . . . 129 “ Baptism of . . . . . . 132 “ Date and Place of Birth . . . . . 128 “ His Work 1n Christendom . . . . . 141 “ in Egypt . . . . . . . . 129 “ Inner Instructions of . . . . . . 136 “ Master of the West . . . . . . 146 “ Sacrifice of . . . . . . . . 132 “ the Divine Teacher . . . . . . 182 “ the Healer and Teacher . . . . . 126 “ training in Essene Community . . . . 129 “ the Master . . . . . . . . 141 392 Index PAGE John of the Cross, Saint . . . . 114 John, Saint, Gospel of, quoted . . x, 45, 52, 53, 56, 102, 131, 132, 133, 135, 176, 179, 214, 239, 245, 248, 260, 268, 270, 271, 290, 379 Judges, Boole of, quoted . 95 Juliana, Mother . 116 Justin Martyr . 147 “ “ quoted 148 et seq. Kabbala, Five Books of, referred to . . 34 Karma . . . . 286, 307 Kathopanishat, quoted 32, 49 Key to Theosophy, quoted . 292 Kingdom of Heaven—real meaning . 52 Kings, Book of, quoted 33, 351 Kosmic Christ, The . 177 “ Process of becoming . 266 “ Sacrifice . . 182 Lang, Andrew, referred to 11, 12 Language of Symbols . 152 Latin Cross, Origin of . . 205 “ Use of, in Roman Church . . 335 Law of Sacrifice . . 200 “ “ in Hinduism . 200 “ “ in Nature of Logos . 202 “ “ in Zoroastrianism . 201 “ “ or Manifestation . 201 LaW, William . 115 Left-hand Path . 17 Lent . . 166 Lévi, Eliphas . 116 Leviticus, quoted . . 355 Light on the Path, quoted . 219 “Little Child ” 64 393 Index PAGE Logos, Birth of the . 204 “ and Sacrifice . 203 “ Life of, in every form . 206 “ Meaning of the Term . 171 “ of Plato . 181 “ Perpetual Sacrifice of . 208 Loss of Mystic Teaching 1n Christianity . . 37 Luke, Saint, Gospel of, quoted . 45, 48, 174, 175, 262, 287, 299, 310 Luther on the Atonement . 195 Madonnas . 159 Magnetic Cures, Secret of . . . 339 “ Change 1n Sacramental Substance . 340 “ Energies in Ether . 339 Magnetisation of Substances . . 339 Making of Religion, The, referred to . . 11 Man as Microcosm . 269 “ and Woman Complementary . 362 “ develops Second Aspect . 270 Man’s Manifold Nature . 233 “Mantras” . . . . 333 “ essential in Sacraments . 336 “ in rite of Baptism . 348 “ in Samskrit . 334 “ spoilt by translation . 335 Mark, Saint, Gospel of, quoted vii, 45, 47 Martin, Saint . 115 Marriage, Deeper meaning of . 362 “ in Lesser Mysteries . 365 “ My story of. . 363 “ Sacrament of . . 361 “ type of union betw een God and Man . . 363 Mary, the \led Mother . 204 Master, the Jesus, . 141 394 Index PAGE Matthew, Saint, Gospel of, quoted . viii, 45, 46, 49, 51, 53, 54, 90, 132,175,0176, 185, 208, 214. 239, 269, 272, 279, 303, 317 Maurice, cited . . . . . .252 Mead, G. R. S., quoted . . 26, 28, 29, 30, 31, 113 Mediator, Nature of . . . . . . 272 Meditation—What it is . . . . . . 291 “ Growth by . . . . . . 297 Men at different levels . . . . . . 3 Miguel de Molinos . . . . . . 115 Ministry of Angels, The . . . . . 285, 287 Miracles . . . . . . . 144 Mithras, Birth of . . . . . . 159 Modern Spirit antagonistic to Prayer . . . . 274 More, Henry . . . . . . 115 Mother Juliana of Norwich . . . . . 116 Mount Serbal . . . . . . . .129 Mount of Initiation . . . . . . 90,187 Miiller, George, Case of . . . . 282 et seq. Mundakopantshat, quoted . . . . . 33, 201 Music in Worship . . . . . . 333, 335 Myers (F.), his St. Paul . . . . . . 375 Mystery Gods . . . . . . . . 25 “ of Christ . . . . . 57 Mysteries, Christian, Symbolism of . . . . 246 Mysteries and Yoga . . . . . 31 Christ as Hierophant of . . . . 230 “ Disappearance of the . . . . . 182 “ Eliphas Lévi on the . . . . . 116 “ established by Christ . . .140 “ Greater, The . . . ix, 1, 22, 27, 63 “ in the Gospels . . . . . . 45 “ in Egypt . . . . . . . 129 “ in relation to Myth . . . . . 156 “ Lesser . . . . . . . ix, 1, 22 395 Index Mysteries, Lesser and Prayer “ “ as to Bodies “ “ Teaching of Names in Christianity “ of Bacchus . PAGE . 278 . 234 . 249 47 21, 27 “ of Chaldaea, Egypt, Eleusis, Mithras, Or- pheus, Samothrace, Scythia “ of God. . of Jesus “ of the Early Church of Magic, quoted. praised by Learned Greeks “ Pseudo, and Sun-God Story source of Mystic Learning . “ The taught Post- -m07 (em Existence “ The True “ The Christ of the “ Theory of the withdIaun . Mystic Christ, The . . . “ Twofold . . . “ Vesture, The Mythic Christ, The Myth, Meaning of “ Solar Mythology Comparative Natural and Spiritual Bodies “ Body—of St. Paul Natural Body, The Need for Graded Religion Neoplatonists . N e11 man, Ca1d1nal quoted . “ Recognizes a Secret Tradition 396 21 56 . 1, 42, 93 68 et seq. . 156 . 21 . 166 . 106 . 170, 177 . 21 . 177 . 183 . 22 . 106 . 169 . 177 . 137 . 144 . 151, 152 . 154 . 146 . 231 .236 234 (t seq. . 14 29, 111 102 et seq. . 104 Index New Testament Proofs of Esotericism Nicene Creed Nicolas of Basel . Noachian Deluge Nous Demz'm'gos of Plato Object of all Religions Occult Experts “ Knowledge, Danger of “ Records . “ “ and the Gospels “ side of Nature . . “ use of Sounds . Old Testament Allegories One Existence, The One, The, Three aspects of “ “ Manifest Origen Against Celsus . . “ on the Need of Wisdom . “ “ Mysteries “ “ Scriptures “ “ Tower of Babel “ referred to . “ Shining Light of Learning Orpheus, Mead’ s, quoted Owen on Atonement Pantsenus Paracelsus Paradise Path of Discipleship Paul, Saint, quoted “ an Initiate “ “ and Mysteries . “ “ and Timothy 397 . 54 et seq” 123, 183 PAGE 42 et seq. . 180 . 112 19 . 253 . 3 . 126 16 . 18 . 128 . 277 . 331 . 120 . 251 . 259 . .259 . 86 et seq. , 94 . 99 . 88 . 369 . 96 44, 72 . . 86 28, 29, 30, 113 .196 72, 73 . 114 .241 .173 61 . . 56 58, 59, 68 Index PAGE Paul, Saint, on Allegory . . . . . . 66 Paul, Saint, by F. Myers . . . . . . 375 Peter, Saint, quoted . . . . . . . 193 Philippians, Epistle to, quoted . . . . . 61 Physical Ailments final expression of Karma . . 308 Physical Body, Changes in . . . . . . 242 “ Material in Sacraments . . . . 338 Pilgrimages, Rationale of . . . . . . 380 Pistis Sophia, quoted . . . . 46, 137, 138, 300 et seq., 317 et seq., 340 “ “ referred to . . . . . . 136 Plato’s Cave . . . . . . . 152 Plato initiated 1n Egypt . . . . . . 21 Platonists of Cambridge . . . . . . 115 Plotinus, Dying Words of . . . . . . 31 “ referred to . . . . . . . 23 “ Mead’s, quoted . . . . . 26, 31 Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna . . . . . 70 Popular Christianity, Mistake of . . . . vii “ Denial of Esoteric Christianity . . . 1 Porphyry, quoted . . . . . . 27, 54 Prayer . . . . . . . . . 274 “ Answers to . . . . . . . 274 “ as Will . . . . . . 283 “ Class B—general principle . . . . 290 “ Failure of . . . . . 285 “ for Spiritual Enlightment . . . . 289 “ for the Student of Lesser Mysteries . . 294 “ Highest form of . . . . . . 291 “ Puzzling Facts as to . . . . . 275 Prayers classified . . . . . . . 276 Probationary Path, The . . . 246 “ Proclaim upon the houses ”—Mystical meaning . 78 Proclus, Teaching of . . . . . 26, 29, 50 Psalms, quoted . . . . . . . 5, 297 398 Index Pseudo-Mysteries and Sun-God Drama Pupils of the Apostles Purgatory Purification Pythagoras, referred to “ in India Pythagorean School, Discipline of Qualifications of Disciple Quietists, The Regions of the Invisible Worlds . Re-incarnation . . . Religion, Need for graded . “ of Ancient Persians, quoted Religions, Common origin of . “ Custodians of Sacred Books “ Essentials of “ fitted for Stages of Growth “ Object of all “ Source of all Religious Founders “ Scriptures “ Teachers Resurrection and Solar Myth “ Body . “ of the Christ “ of the Dead “ The—Part of Lesser Mysteries Revelation . . . “ Fragments of, in Sacred Books “ in Cypher “ of Deity in Kosmos Melatz'ons, Book of, quoted 248, 261, 290, 320, 329 399 13 10 10 9 . 230, 247 . 239 . 247 . 61 . 230 . 366 . 367 . 367 .372 50, 63, 65, Index PAGE Revolt against Dogma . . . . . . 38 Roman Empire dying . . . . . . 106 Romans, Epistle to, quoted . . . . . 81, 360 Rosenkreutz, Christian . . . . . . 115 Ruling Angel of Jews . . . . . . 95, 96 Ruysbroeck . . . . . . . . . 113 Sacrament, a kind of crucible . . . . . 324 “ a Pictorial Allegory . . . . 322 “ Change in substance at . . . . 340 “ Link between Visible and Invisible . 324, 325 “ of Baptism . . . . . . 344 “ of Eucharist . . . . . . 344 “ of Marriage . . . . . 344, 361 “ of Penance . . . . . . 338 Sacraments . . . . . . . . . 322 “ Angels connected with . . . . 340 “ defined in Church Catechism . . . 326 “ Gestures used in . . . . . 336 “ in all Religions . . . . . 322 “ Lost at Reformation . . . . 325 “ Mantras in . . . . . . 336 “ of Christian Church . . . . . 325 “ Peculiar Characteristics of . . . 322 “ Seven, of Christianity . . . 325, 343 “ Signs, Seals, or Sigils in . . . . 336 “ “Substance” and “Accidents” of . . 358 “ Twofold Nature of . . . 322 et seq. “ Two, in Protestant Communities . 326, 343 Sacred Places and Objects . . . . . . 377 Sacred Quaternery, The . . . . . . 259 Sacrifice as Joy . . . . . . 208 et seq. “ Law of . . . . . . . . . 200 “ “ Four Stages in . . . . . 211 “ Lessons in . . . . . 211 et seq. 400 Index Sacrifice of Jesus Samuel, Boole of, quoted Savage Deities Savages as Descendants of Civilisation Saviour, The True Sayings of Jesus Scientific Analysis of Vehicles Search for God, The Secret Teachings of Jesus “ Tradition recognised byI New man Second Birth Sepher Yetzz'mh, quoted Sharpe’s Egyptian 11f Jthologm quoted. Shoetdslm ataropam' 971 at quoted “Sign of Power” Society of Friends Solar Gods “ Myth, Root of Sopater, quoted Sephia—The Wisdom . Soul—Dual. . Sound and Form 1n the Invisible Worlds Sound, Occult use of Source of Religions Spirit and Matter Spirit threefold . “ manifested as triple Self Spiritual Body, Divisions of “Star of Initiation ” . “Strait Gate” term of Initiation Stwmata, or Miscellanies of S. Clement, quoted . 72 et seq. Sufierings of the Christ Superintending Spirits Sun God Legend . . 26 401 PAGE . 132 33 11 . 12 218 et seq. 53, 54, 299 . 236 5 . 89 . 102 . 184, 246 . 34 . 257 . 32 . 337 . 116 . 158 . 177 . 21 . 137 . 232 . 331 . 332 . 7 . 364 . 231 . . 328 237 et seq. .185 .49, 50,173, 175 . 58, . 220 . 96 . 156 Index PAGE Sun God Symbol of Logos . . . . . . 170 “ Heroes . . . . . . . . 163 “ Myths, 1ecurring . . . . . . . 167 “ of Righteousness . . . . . . . 248 “ Symbol of the Logos . . . . . . 153 “ Symbols . . . . . . . . 154 Survival of Christianity? . . . . . . 40 Symbol of Jesus . . . . . . . . . 164 “ of Trinity . . . . . . 264 Symbols—animal, in Zodiac . . . . . 164 “ Language of. . . . . .152 Symbols of Logoi . . . . . 264 et seq. Tatian and Theodotus, referred to . . . , ’72 Tauler, John . . . . . . . 113 Taylor, Robert, quoted . . . . . . 347 Teachings common to all Religions . . 145 “ in the hands of Spiritual Brotherhood . 371 Teresa, Saint . . . . . . . . 115 Teitullian on Baptism . . . . . . 150 The Christ . . . . . . . 133 The Hidden Side of Religions . . . . . 1 “ “ “ of Christianity . . . . 36 The Disciples . . . . . . . . 135 The “Simple Gospel ” . . . . . . . 38 The title of Lord. . . . . . . 95 The Testimony of the Scriptures . . . . 36 The Tower of Babel . . . . . . . 96 The Thyrsus . . . . . . . . 74 The True Exstasis . . . . . . . 107 The Trinity. . . . . . . 251 “ among the Hebrews . . . . 252 “ “ Hindu . . . . . . . 255 “ “ in Buddhism . . . . . . 256 “ “ in Chaldaaa . . . . . . 257 402 Index PAGE The Trinity 1n China . . . . . . 257 in Extinct Religions . . . . 256 “ “ in Egypt . . . . . . 256 “ “ in Man . . . . . . 176, 232 “ “ in Manifestation . . . . . 252 “ “ in Zoroast1ianism . . . . 255 The Word of Wisdom, of Knowledge . . . 101 Theological Hell. . . . . . . . 305 Theosophical Review, quoted . . . . . 227 Thessalonians, Epistle to, quoted . . . . 232 Three Worlds, The . . . . . . . 240 Timothy, Fmistle to, quoted . . 59, 60, 61, 65, 133, 226 Tradition of Post-mortem Teaching of Jesus . . 46 Transubstantiation—Truth Underlying . . . 357 Triangle as a Symbol of Trinity . . . . . 265 Trinity, A Second . . . . . . . 261 “ of Spirit . . . . 232 Trinity' 1n Christian agrees with other Faiths . . 258 Triple Aspect of Matter . . . . . 261, 262 Triplicity in Nature . . . . . . . 258 True Theos0phy defined . . . . . x Two Schools of Christian Interpretation . . . 121 Two- fold Division of Man Insufficient . . . 231 Vaivasvata Manu . . . . . . . 19 Valentinus . . . . . . . . . 137 Vaughan, Thomas . . . 115 Vehicles of Consciousness, Need for Difl‘erent . . 237 Vibrations . . . . . . . 332 Vibratory Efiects of Mass . . . . . . 335 Virgin Matter . . . . . . . 263 “ “ and Third Person of Trinity, . . 263 “ “ and Second Person of Trinity, . . 263 “ Mother . . . . . . 262 Virgin’s Womb, Meaning of . . . . . 179 403 Index PAGE Virgo, Zodiacal Sign of . . . . . 157, 159 Viitues in the Mysteries . . . . . . 27 l vice of (he Szlerwe, quoted. . . 248 Voice figures—Mrs. Watts Htghes, referred to. . 331 Williamson’s Great Law, quoted . 160, 162 et 869., 165, 166, 201, 253, 257. 345, 355 Will as Prayer . . . . . . . . 283 \Vortl of Power . . . . . . . . 333 Work of the Holy Spirit . . . . . 178, 266 “ “ Second Person . . . . 178, 267 “ “ First Person . . . . . 268 Working of Logos in Matter . . . . . 181 W orkers 1n Kosmos . . . . . 281 “ the Invisible \Vorlds. . . . 151, 278 \Vorld Bibles, fragments of Revelation . . . 371 \Vorld Soul, The . . . . . . . 23 \Vorld Symbols . . . . . . . . 264 Writings of the Disciples . . . . . . 139 Zechariah, quoted . . . . . . . 266 Zodiac, The . . . . . . . . . 195 .a-~- '7\.‘ .' \ F ’\ I). r; ‘ \ \’ Of T“ ' I, ".\ L'N'VERUITY (3r \‘ (‘1: .romW‘ I 404 The Works of Annie Besant BOOKS ESOTERIC CHRISTIANITY; or, The Lesser Mysteries. $1.50 net. ANCIENT IDEALS IN MODERN LIFE. 75 cents net. THE ANCIENT WISDOM. An Outline of Theosophical Teach- in . 1.50 net. BHAGAVAD GITA; OR, THE LORD’S SONG. New and re- vised translation. Morocco, $1.00 net; leather, 75 cents net; cloth, 50 cents net; paper, 15 cents net. SOME PROBLEMS OF LIFE. ramo. 75 cents net. THE AVATARAS. rzmo. 75 cents net. THE EVOLUTION OF LIFE AND FORM. ramo. 75 cents net. THE STORY OF THE GREAT WAR. ramo. $1.25 net; Edition de luxe, 81.75 net. DHARMA. xzmo. 50 cents net. AN AUTOBIOGRAPHY. rzmo. $1.75 net. THE BIRTH AND EVOLUTION OF THE SOUL. rzmo. 35 cents net. BUILDING OF KOSMOS. nmo. 75 cents net. Contents: Building of Kosmos; Sound; Fire; Yoga; Symbolism. DEATH—AND AFTER? 35 cents net. “A ular ex sition of post-marten: states according to the EsoterixcoghiIOSOp , now known as Theosophy." ELECTRICITY. Paper, 15 cents net. FOUR GREAT RELIGIONS. rzmo. 75 cents net. Hinduism, Zoroastrianism, Buddhism and Christianity. THE FUTURE THAT AWAITS US. Wrappers, 35 cents net. IN THE OUTER COURT. rzmo. 75 cents net. Contents: Purification, Thou ht-Control, Building of Character, Spiritual Alchemy, On the Thres old. KARMA. 35 cents net. Contents: The Nature of Karma; The Invariability of Law; Hierarchies of Beings; Man’s Relations with the Elementals; The Generation of Thought Forms; Language of Colours; The Making of Habit; The Making of Karma in Pnnciple; Karma as Cause; The Making of Kama in Detail; Mental Images as Karma Causes ; Eflect of Desires in KAmaloka; The Working out of Karma, etc. LIGHT, HEAT, AND SOUND. rzmo. 75 cents net. MAN AND HIS BODIES. 35 cents net. “ It treats a subject of the first importance to students of The. oso hy with great ability, and will 've the thinking reader clear an lucid ideas upon many ints at it is absolutely necessary he should ri tly apprehen , but which have hitherto been the source of mu confusion and misapprehension.” THE PATH OF DISCIPLESHIP. nmo. 75 cents net. “Contents: First Steps (Karma-Y0 , Purification), Qualifica- tion for Disci leship (Control of Min , Meditation, Building of Character), e Li e of the Disciple (The Probation Path, the Four Initiations , The Future Progress of Humanity( ethods of Future Science, an’s Coming Development)." REINCARNATION. 35 cents net. A a? ular explanation of Reincarnation, according to the Eso- teric '10s0phy, now known as Theosophy. John Lane. 67 Fifth Ave.. New York The Works of Annie Besant BOOKS—Continued THE SELF AND ITS SHEATHS. rzmo. so cents net. “ These lectures are without doubt the best that Mrs. Besant has yet delivered, at any rate from the standpoint of a student.” THE SEVEN PRINCIPLES OF MAN. 35 cents net. A popular exposition of the constitution of man, according to the Esoteric Philosophy, popularly known as Theosophy. THE DOCTRINE OF THE HEART. Cloth, so cents net; leather, 75 cents net. PAMPHLETS THE MASTERS AS FACTS AND IDEALS. Paper, 15 cents net. THE PLACE OF PEACE. Paper, 5 cents net. WHY I BECAME A THEOSOPHIST. Paper, 10 cents net. A ROUGH OUTLINE OF THEOSOPHY. Paper, 10 cents net. THE SPHINX OF THEOSOPHY. Paper, 10 cents net. THEOSOPHY IN QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS. Paper, 10 cents net. THE MEANING AND USE OF PAIN. Paper, 10 cents net. VEGETARIANISM IN THE LIGHT OF THEOSOPHY. Paper, 10 cents net. THEOSOPHY AND ITS EVIDENCES. Paper, 10 cents net. INTRODUCTION TO THEOSOPHY. Paper, 10 cents net. THEOSOPHY AND CHRISTIANITY. Paper, 5 cents net. IN DEFENSE OF THEOSOPHY. Paper, 8 cents net. EASTERN CASTES AND WESTERN CLASSES. Paper, 10 cents net. THE PILGRIMAGE OF THE SOUL. Paper, 10 cents net. THE PLACE OF POLITICS IN THE LIFE OF A NATION. Paper, 10 cents net. MATERIALISM UNDERMINED BY SCIENCE. Paper, 10 cents net. THEOSOPHY AND ITS TEACHINGS. Paper, 10 cents net. 1875 TO 1891 : A FRAGMENT OF AUTOBIOGRAPHY. Paper, 8 cents net. THE USE OF EVIL. Paper, 10 cents net. DEVOTION AND THE SPIRITUAL LIFE. Paper, 10 cents net. THEOSOPHY AND THE LAW OF POPULATION. Paper, 5 cents net. THEOSOPHY AND ITS PRACTICAL APPLICATION. Paper, 3 cents net. ON SOME DIFFICULTIES OF THE INNER LIFE. Paper, 10 cents net. OCCULTISM, SEMI-OCCULTISM, AND PSEUDO-OCCULT- ISM. Paper, 15 cents net. EMOTION, INTELLECT, AND SPIRITUALITY. Paper, 15 cents net. INDIVIDUALITY. Paper, 15 cents net. John Lane, 67 Fifth Ave.. New York The Best, most Successful, and Cheapest Art Magazine in the World The International STUDIO An Illustrated Magazine of Fine and Applied Art Oflices: 67 Fifth Avenue, New York 3 5 cents per month Annual Subscriptions $3.50 Three Months’ Trial Subscription $1.00 It is the mission of “ The International Studio” to treat of Modern Art in all its phases-—Art in Painting, Art in Sculpture, Art in Books, Art in Decoration, Art in the Home ; and to illustrate not only the best pictures, but also the best decorative designs of the day. The principal writers on Art are contributors to its pages. Many original illustrations reproduced in the best possible manner are to be found in every number. Color supplements of artistic value are regularly presented. Everyone interested in Art, professionally or otherwise, should read it. JOHN LANE, PUBLISHER 67 Fifth Avenue, New York